Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n according_a know_v word_n 2,143 5 3.8658 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A00793 The answere vnto the nine points of controuersy, proposed by our late soueraygne (of famous memory) vnto M. Fisher of the Society of Iesus And the reioynder vnto the reply of D. Francis VVhite minister. With the picture of the sayd minister, or censure of his writings prefixed. Fisher, John, 1569-1641.; Floyd, John, 1572-1649. 1626 (1626) STC 10911; ESTC S102112 538,202 656

There are 48 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o thing_n with_o these_o promise_n say_v s._n augustine_n ibid._n augustine_n quâ_fw-la promissâ_fw-la anim●_n naturaliter_fw-la gaudet_fw-la humana_fw-la &_o sanorum_fw-la escas_fw-la appetendo_fw-la irruit_fw-la in_o u●nena_fw-la fallentium_fw-la augustin_n ibid._n the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v natural_o overioy_v &_o while_o they_o gape_v after_o the_o promise_a sight_n of_o divine_a truth_n whereof_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a the_o cozen_a promiser_n cast_v into_o their_o mouth_n &_o make_v they_o devour_v the_o poison_a morsel_n of_o their_o falsehood_n concern_v the_o light_n of_o scripture_n §._o 3._o concern_v the_o light_n of_o scripture_n two_o thing_n be_v evident_a first_o some_o argument_n of_o probability_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v they_o be_v of_o god_n which_o serve_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o believer_n and_o may_v somewhat_o incline_v infidel_n to_o believe_v upon_o other_o great_a motive_n to_o wit_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n &_o his_o church_n this_o probable_a evidence_n &_o evident_a probability_n be_v all_o which_o the_o testimony_n of_o schoolman_n bring_v by_o the_o minister_n affirm_v second_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o light_a to_o show_v itself_o with_o evident_a certainty_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v such_o without_o be_v see_v as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o point_n and_o mystery_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o reveal_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n this_o be_v demonstrate_v because_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v true_a and_o certain_a not_o only_o in_o some_o part●_n but_o also_o in_o all_o &_o every_o part_n &_o particle_n thereof_o so_o that_o as_o say_v our_o 2._o our_o pag._n 16._o lin_v 2._o minister_n no_o liar_n can_v speak_v therein_o and_o if_o remanebit_fw-la if_o augustin_n epist_n 9_o si_fw-mi ad_fw-la scripturas_fw-la admittatur_fw-la mendacium_fw-la quid_fw-la eye_n authoritatis_fw-la remanebit_fw-la one_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n be_v prove_v false_a the_o credit_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v lose_v but_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v know_v by_o the_o light_n &_o evidence_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o every_o book_n &_o chapter_n leaf_n and_o line_n be_v certain_a and_o assure_a truth_n and_o that_o no_o lie_n or_o falsehood_n be_v contain_v therein_o as_o these_o seven_o argument_n evince_n the_o first_o argument_n first_o because_o the_o 1._o the_o hieron_n epist_n ad_fw-la aug._n 19_o inter_fw-la epist_n aug._n scripturae_fw-la obscurissimae_fw-la sunt_fw-la iren._n l._n 2._o c._n 47._o origen_n lib._n 7._o contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la reverà_fw-la multis_fw-la locis_fw-la obscurae_fw-la vide_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr script_n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o father_n teach_v and_o scripture_n and_o field_n church_n l._n 4._o c._n 15._o no_o question_n but_o there_o be_v manifold_a obscuritye_n in_o scripture_n protestant_n even_o our_o 35._o our_o reply_v pag._n 35._o minister_n acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v many_o dark_a and_o obscure_a passage_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o innumerable_a difficultye_n that_o sometime_o one_o potest_fw-la one_o quid_fw-la vel_fw-la falsò_fw-la suspicentur_fw-la non_fw-la inveniunt_fw-la aug._n l._n 2._o the_o doctr_n christ._n c._n ●_o whitaker_n de_fw-fr eccles._n pag._n 220._o quaedam_fw-la loca_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la nihil_fw-la certo_fw-la statui_fw-la potest_fw-la can_v hardly_o so_o much_o as_o give_v a_o probable_a guess_n at_o their_o meaning_n but_o these_o text_n and_o place_n can_v be_v know_v to_o contain_v divine_a truth_n &_o no_o falsehood_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n therefore_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v nothing_o but_o truth_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n hence_o appear_v that_o protestant_n teach_v that_o ●he_n scripture_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o no_o lie_n be_v contain_v therein_o by_o the_o evidence_n and_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contradict_v themselves_o in_o say_v that_o in_o many_o place_n it_o be_v difficile_a and_o dark_a as_o they_o can_v assure_o understand_v it_o for_o how_o can_v they_o know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sense_n or_o doctrine_n that_o the_o text_n not_o understand_v contain_v nothing_o but_o truth_n the_o second_o argument_n second_o the_o scripture_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o majesty_n 7._o majesty_n reply_v pag._n 16._o internal_a matter_n &_o majesty_n of_o the_o book_n item_n pag._n 30._o &_o 68_o field_n appendix_n 34._o caluin_n instit._fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 7._o &_o purity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n but_o though_o some_o mystery_n of_o the_o scripture_n carry_v a_o majesty_n in_o respect_n of_o natural_a reason_n and_o a_o show_n of_o sublimity_n above_o it_o as_o the_o bless_a trinity_n yet_o 1._o yet_o sunt_fw-la quaedam_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la litteris_fw-la quae_fw-la quia_fw-la suboffendunt_fw-la animos_fw-la ignaros_fw-la &_o negligentes_fw-la svi_fw-la quae_fw-la maxima_fw-la turba_fw-la populariter_fw-la accusari_fw-la defendi_fw-la autem_fw-la populariter_fw-la propter_fw-la mysteria_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o illis_fw-la continentur_fw-la non_fw-la à_fw-la multis_fw-la admodum_fw-la possunt_fw-la aug._n the_o util_a cred_a c._n 1._o other_o point_n of_o scripture_n seem_v unto_o reason_n ridiculous_a and_o childish_a as_o that_o the_o serpent_n do_v speak_v to_o the_o woman_n that_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v naked_a without_o perceive_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o that_o there_o be_v day_n and_o night_n before_o the_o sun_n be_v create_v &_o the_o like_a therefore_o we_o must_v have_v some_o other_o &_o sure_a ground_n than_o this_o majesty_n of_o the_o doctrine_n to_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v nothing_o but_o truth_n &_o god_n infallible_a word_n the_o three_o argument_n three_o whereas_o the_o 19_o the_o reply_v pag._n 19_o minister_n much_o urge_v the_o harmony_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o same_o to_o be_v of_o god_n though_o this_o harmony_n appear_v in_o diverse_a thing_n yet_o who_o do_v not_o know_v that_o innumerable_a seem_a contradiction_n be_v object_v against_o scripture_n father_n scripture_n this_o be_v evident_a unto_o all_o that_o have_v read_v the_o commentary_n of_o the_o father_n many_o of_o which_o be_v only_o probable_o answer_v by_o the_o father_n many_o answer_v by_o thing_n assume_v without_o proof_n only_o because_o otherwise_o we_o must_v admit_v contradiction_n in_o scripture_n king_n scripture_n this_o appear_v particular_o in_o the_o four_o first_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n and_o in_o the_o genealogy_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o in_o concord_v the_o chronologye_n of_o the_o book_n of_o king_n some_o place_n not_o full_o answer_v but_o the_o father_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v from_o literal_a unto_o allegorical_a sense_n how_o then_o can_v the_o ancient_a father_n know_v the_o harmony_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n &_o thereon_o ground_v their_o faith_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o god_n or_o if_o they_o can_v not_o how_o can_v we_o for_o what_o the_o minister_n boast_o affirm_v 15._o affirm_v reply_v pag._n 24._o lin_v 15._o of_o himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n we_o find_v at_o this_o day_n a_o perfect_a harmony_n of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o themselves_o and_o a_o perfect_a agreement_n of_o the_o same_o with_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n this_o ministerial_a brag_n i_o say_v of_o their_o find_v the_o harmony_n of_o all_o scripture_n at_o this_o day_n above_o all_o the_o ancient_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v incredible_a for_o man_n can_v be_v more_o sure_a of_o the_o perfect_a harmony_n of_o scripture_n than_o they_o be_v sure_a that_o all_o contradiction_n lay_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o scripture_n have_v true_a solution_n but_o no_o man_n live_v ever_o be_v or_o be_v sure_a by_o evidence_n that_o all_o the_o solution_n and_o answer_n use_v to_o reconcile_v scripture_n be_v the_o truth_n no_o not_o protestant_n for_o do_v they_o understand_v assure_o every_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o every_o seem_a contradiction_n be_v reconcile_v can_v there_o be_v among_o they_o such_o different_a and_o adverse_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o no_o man_n ever_o do_v or_o do_v know_v the_o perfect_a harmony_n of_o all_o scripture_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n nor_o consequent_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o this_o harmony_n the_o four_o argument_n four_o whereas_o the_o minister_n pretend_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o style_n affirm_v that_o see_v god_n have_v bestow_v tongue_n and_o voice_n on_o man_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v know_v the_o jesuite_n can_v persuade_v any_o reasonable_a man_n that_o god_n so_o speak_v in_o scripture_n as_o man_n elevate_v
man_n offend_v he_o comparative_o with_o he_o infinite_o base_a wherefore_o mortal_a sin_n which_o be_v a_o abandon_v of_o god_n for_o some_o transitory_a content_n be_v injury_n do_v unto_o god_n incomparable_o grievous_a on_o the_o other_o side_n satisfaction_n be_v the_o less_o esteem_v by_o how_o much_o the_o person_n satisfy_v be_v mean_a and_o the_o person_n offend_v great_a man_n and_o angel_n what_o be_v they_o be_v compare_v with_o god_n certain_o nothing_o therefore_o certain_o their_o work_n &_o satisfaction_n be_v inestimable_o disproportionable_a to_o satisfy_v for_o any_o the_o least_o mortal_a sin_n the_o guilt_n whereof_o be_v so_o great_a a_o debt_n as_o it_o be_v unsatisfiable_a but_o only_o by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v a_o person_n coequal_a &_o consubstantial_a with_o his_o father_n to_o satisfy_v god_n anger_n by_o humble_v the_o infinite_a dignity_n of_o his_o person_n unto_o the_o most_o disgraceful_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n offer_a satisfaction_n full_a and_o complete_a yea_o superabundant_a the_o person_n satisfy_v in_o regard_n of_o his_o divinity_n be_v infinite_o more_o honourable_a than_o the_o person_n offend_v be_v contemptible_a by_o reason_n of_o his_o baseness_n three_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v that_o those_o that_o have_v be_v make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o baptism_n if_o they_o sin_v mortal_o afterward_o when_o they_o repent_v god_n forgive_v they_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o consequent_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n bountiful_o &_o gracious_o through_o the_o mere_a merit_n of_o christ_n without_o their_o satisfaction_n only_o they_o must_v by_o faith_n by_o fear_n by_o hope_n by_o contrition_n by_o purpose_n of_o amendment_n prepare_v &_o make_v themselves_o capable_a of_o that_o gracious_a and_o grace-infusing_a pardon_n four_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v that_o god_n by_o pennance_n forgive_a the_o eternal_a punishment_n do_v in_o lieu_n thereof_o many_o time_n appoint_v a_o task_n of_o temporal_a pain_n to_o be_v endure_v by_o the_o penitent_a this_o reserve_v penalty_n be_v great_a or_o lesser_a according_a to_o the_o multitude_n and_o grievousnes_n of_o the_o sin_n commit_v and_o be_v that_o for_o which_o penitent_n may_v and_o must_v satisfy_v and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o penal_a work_n perform_v by_o the_o child_n of_o god_n beautify_v by_o so_o many_o aforenamed_a excellent_a grace_n be_v sufficient_a to_o deserve_v of_o god_n the_o remission_n of_o this_o temporal_a mulct_n and_o cancel_v the_o debt_n of_o endure_v transitory_a pain_n i_o can_v bring_v testimony_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n in_o great_a number_n for_o the_o necessity_n we_o have_v of_o suffer_v these_o voluntary_a affliction_n for_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o efficacity_n thereof_o to_o expiate_v sin_n with_o the_o very_a name_n of_o satisfaction_n term_n satisfaction_n the_o minister_n will_v fain_o elude_v this_o consent_n of_o father_n by_o diverse_a shift_n but_o two_o be_v the_o chief_a which_o i_o will_v here_o full_o refute_v pag._n 544._o he_o say_v the_o romist_n in_o their_o course_n of_o doctrine_n about_o satisfaction_n pervert_v all_o that_o which_o the_o father_n teach_v first_o that_o which_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o the_o fault_n and_o guilt_n of_o sin_n they_o wrest_v to_o the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n remain_v after_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o everlasting_a guilt_n answer_n you_o be_v according_a to_o the_o ministerial_a wont_a proud_a &_o bold_a in_o your_o accusation_n but_o poor_a and_o miserable_a in_o your_o proof_n you_o say_v the_o father_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n but_o of_o the_o very_a guilt_n thereof_o and_o in_o another_o place_n pag._n 547._o yet_o more_o bold_o what_o soever_o be_v speak_v in_o holy_a scripture_n or_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n concern_v redeem_v sin_n by_o satisfaction_n belong_v to_o the_o fault_n and_o eternal_a pain_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o satisfaction_n must_v be_v perform_v by_o the_o delinquent_n himself_o in_o this_o present_a life_n this_o you_o say_v but_o prove_v it_o not_o yea_o the_o contrary_n be_v clear_a truth_n and_o prove_v by_o these_o 4._o or_o 5._o argument_n first_o if_o after_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o everlasting_a guilt_n there_o remain_v a_o temporal_a pain_n to_o be_v mitigate_v and_o take_v away_o by_o penitential_a work_n than_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v but_o the_o father_n speak_v something_o thereof_o but_o yourself_o p._n 540._o lin_v ult._n say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o remaynder_n of_o temporal_a affliction_n after_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o pag_n 541._o lin_v 7._o that_o this_o temporal_a pain_n may_v be_v remove_v or_o mitigate_v by_o work_n of_o mortification_n and_o penance_n therefore_o you_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v the_o father_n never_o speak_v thereof_o second_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o that_o kind_n of_o satisfaction_n which_o david_n make_v unto_o god_n for_o his_o adultery_n and_o murder_n of_o urias_n yea_o they_o make_v this_o satisfaction_n of_o david_n the_o prototype_n and_o perfect_a pattern_n of_o that_o satisfaction_n they_o require_v hilarius_n in_o psal._n 118._o &_o alij_fw-la but_o david_n his_o satisfaction_n by_o patient_a endure_a penalty_n inflict_v be_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n and_o not_o for_o the_o stain_n and_o eternal_a guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v remit_v long_o before_o present_o upon_o his_o inward_a contrition_n and_o repentance_n dominus_fw-la à_fw-la te_fw-la transtulit_fw-la peccatum_fw-la tuum_fw-la 2._o reg._n 12.13_o therefore_o the_o satisfaction_n which_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n require_v be_v for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n not_o for_o the_o guilt_n of_o mortal_a sin_n three_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o after_o inward_a grief_n and_o contrition_n for_o sin_n by_o which_o they_o know_v the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o eternal_a pain_n be_v remit_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n ezechiel_n 18.22_o long_o continue_v satisfaction_n must_v be_v do_v to_o pacify_v god_n wrath_n cyprian_n epist._n 40._o dominus_fw-la long_fw-mi &_o continua_fw-la satisfactione_n placandus_fw-la est_fw-la but_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a pain_n be_v remit_v man_n need_v not_o nor_o can_v satisfy_v but_o for_o the_o temporal_a four_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o man_n must_v seek_v to_o satisfy_v for_o their_o sin_n even_o after_o they_o be_v just_a and_o god_n adopt_a child_n hierom._n in_o epitaph_n paulae_fw-la but_o in_o the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o everlasting_a guilt_n be_v remit_v and_o nothing_o can_v remain_v to_o be_v remove_v by_o satisfaction_n but_o the_o guilt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n final_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o after_o this_o life_n often_o there_o remain_v something_o of_o sin_n to_o be_v expiate_v by_o purgatory_n pain_n from_o which_o soul_n may_v be_v release_v and_o relieve_v by_o the_o pious_a work_n of_o their_o live_a friend_n so_o say_v s._n augustine_n express_o l._n 21._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 24._o serm_n 32._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apostol_n and_o many_o other_o i_o omit_v other_o demonstration_n of_o this_o truth_n to_o what_o you_o so_o much_o object_n that_o father_n say_v man_n must_v redeem_v their_o sin_n and_o satisfy_v for_o their_o offence_n to_o god_n i_o answer_v by_o sin_n they_o mean_v the_o pain_n due_a unto_o sin_n which_o be_v term_v sin_n because_o it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o sin_n hence_o sin_n be_v say_v after_o the_o remission_n thereof_o to_o remain_v in_o the_o soul_n to_o wit_n in_o his_o effect_n nor_o can_v the_o soul_n be_v say_v to_o be_v full_o cleanse_v until_o this_o debt_n be_v satisfy_v minister_n pag._n 544._o second_o that_o which_o the_o father_n style_v satisfaction_n improper_o and_o by_o way_n of_o deprecation_n the_o romist_n make_v satisfaction_n of_o condignity_n yea_o of_o rigour_n of_o justice._n nazarius_n in_o 3_o p._n d._n thom._n q._n 1._o art_n 2._o controu_fw-fr 7._o pag._n 113._o and_o for_o venial_a sin_n more_o effectual_a than_o christ_n satisfaction_n suarez_n tom._n 4._o in_o 3._o p._n disp_n 48._o sect_n 3._o answer_n your_o slander_v humour_n be_v intolerable_a nazarius_n say_v &_o prove_v that_o our_o satisfaction_n neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v in_o rigour_n of_o justice_n he_o add_v if_o our_o satisfaction_n be_v join_v with_o christ_n dicetur_fw-la eam_fw-la esse_fw-la de_fw-la rigore_fw-la iustiti●_n ratione_fw-la satisfactionis_fw-la christi_fw-la it_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o rigour_n of_o justice_n in_o respect_n not_o of_o itself_o but_o of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ._n hence_o you_o charge_v he_o with_o this_o proposition_n man_n may_v make_v satisfaction_n to_o god_n in_o rigour_n of_o justice_n very_o you_o may_v as_o well_o accuse_v s._n paul_n of_o make_v himself_o omnipotent_a absolute_o and_o without_o any_o
2._o that_o this_o worship_n be_v ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o church_n without_o beginning_n pag._n 142.143_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o the_o place_n of_o exodus_fw-la &_o deut._n with_o no_o probability_n urge_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n by_o protestant_n that_o make_v they_o pag._n 154.155_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o inconvenience_n which_o may_v come_v by_o occasion_n of_o image_n easy_o prevent_v and_o their_o utility_n very_o great_a pag._n 158.159_o the_o second_o and_z third_z point_n ii_o pray_v &_o offer_v oblation_n to_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n iii_o worshipping_n &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n &_o angel_n pag._n 172._o §_o 1._o a_o eleven_o demonstration_n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_a church_n do_v ever_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n &_o religion_n pag._n 173.174_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o invocation_n of_o saint_n not_o to_o be_v dislike_v because_o not_o express_v in_o scripture_n pag._n 194._o §_o 3._o knowledge_n of_o prayer_n make_v to_o they_o communicable_a &_o communicate_v unto_o saint_n pag._n 196.197_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o the_o worship_n in_o spirit_n &_o truth_n with_o outward_a prostration_n of_o body_n due_a unto_o saint_n pag._n 206.207_o etc._n etc._n §_o 5._o pray_v to_o saint_n not_o injurious_a to_o god_n mercy_n but_o rather_o a_o commendation_n thereof_o pag._n 211.212_o etc._n etc._n §_o 6._o invocation_n of_o saint_n not_o a_o injury_n but_o a_o honour_n to_o christ_n the_o only_a mediator_n pag._n 215.216_o etc._n etc._n §_o 7._o how_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o appropriate_v the_o obtain_n of_o grace_n and_o cure_n unto_o saint_n pag._n 219.220_o etc._n etc._n §_o 8._o concern_v oblation_n make_v to_o saint_n p._n 223.224_o etc._n etc._n §_o 9_o the_o roman_a church_n set-forme_n of_o prayer_n without_o cause_n mislike_v pag._n 226.227_o the_o four_o point_n four_o the_o liturgy_n &_o private_a prayer_n for_o the_o ignorant_a in_o a_o unknown_n tongue_n pag._n 130.131_o the_o five_o point_n v._o repetition_n of_o pater_n noster_n ave_n &_o creed_n especial_o affix_v a_o kind_n of_o merit_n to_o the_o number_n of_o they_o p._n 241.242_o etc._n etc._n the_o sixth_o point_n vi_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n ¶_o a_o addition_n prove_v the_o catholic_a real_a presence_n according_a to_o the_o literal_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n against_o ministerial_a metaphor_n figure_n &_o shift_n pag._n 248._o ¶_o §_o 1._o the_o zwinglian_n and_o caluinian_a religion_n about_o the_o sacrament_n pag._n 248._o ¶_o §_o 2._o the_o zwinglian_n &_o caluinian_a presence_n confute_v pag._n 250._o ¶_o §_o 3._o the_o minister_n argument_n against_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n vain_a &_o idle_a pag._n 253.254_o etc._n etc._n §_o 1._o that_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n pag._n 260.261_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o transubstantiation_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o real_a presence_n pag._n 266.267_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o transubstantiation_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o father_n pag._n 271.272_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o a_o refutation_n of_o the_o minister_n shift_n to_o elude_v the_o former_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n pag._n 276.277_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o the_o seem_a repugnance_n this_o mystery_n have_v with_o sense_n shall_v inclyne_v christian_n the_o soon_o to_o believe_v it_o pag._n 290.291_o the_o seven_o point_n vii_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n &_o abet_v of_o it_o by_o concomitancy_n pag._n 305._o §_o 1._o the_o doctrine_n of_o concomitancy_n prove_v pag._n 306.307_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ._n pag._n 311.312_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n pag._n 315.316_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o christ_n his_o precept_n pag._n 319.320_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o the_o place_n of_o s._n john_n qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la hunc_fw-la panem_fw-la etc._n etc._n explicate_v with_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n pag._n 330.331_o §_o 5._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n pag._n 332.333_o etc._n etc._n the_o eight_o point_n viii_o work_n of_o supererogation_n special_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 334._o §_o 1._o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n declare_v pag._n ibid._n &_o 335.336_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o the_o minister_n argument_n or_o rather_o inuective_n against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n answer_v pa._n 347.348_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o merit_n of_o work_n of_o supererogation_n p._n 348.349_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o the_o father_n teach_v work_n of_o supererogation_n and_o prove_v they_o by_o scripture_n pag._n 352.353_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o the_o doctrine_n of_o satisfaction_n pag._n 358.359_o etc._n etc._n §_o 5._o work_n with_o reference_n unto_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 362.363_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o the_o minister_n rail_v argument_n against_o the_o former_a doctrine_n censure_v pag._n 372.373_o etc._n etc._n the_o nine_o point_n ix_o the_o opinion_n of_o depose_v king_n &_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n by_o papal_a power_n whether_o direct_o or_o indirect_o pag._n 382._o ¶_o the_o minister_n fond_a cavil_v that_o jesuit_n honour_n not_o the_o king_n as_o soveraygne_n pag._n 383.384_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o his_o fond_a proof_n of_o his_o slander_n that_o jesuit_n hold_v singular_a opinion_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o king_n pa._n 385.386_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o his_o fondness_n in_o cavil_v at_o the_o jesuit_n word_n about_o the_o temporal_a sovereignty_n of_o pope_n pag._n 389.390_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o his_o miserable_a apology_n for_o protestant_n p._n 391.392_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o his_o cavil_v against_o the_o jesuit_n special_a vow_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n pag._n 393._o etc._n etc._n the_o conclusion_n fault_n escape_v in_o the_o print_n in_o the_o picture_n and_o censure_n pag._n 10._o lin_v 14._o christ_n read_v christ_n pag._n 12._o lin_v 17._o in_o mark_fw-mi ministry_n read_v minister_n pag._n 13._o l._n 2._o in_o mark_fw-mi conferunt_fw-la read_v conferant_fw-la pag._n 16._o l._n 20._o place_n translate_v read_v place_n true_o translate_v pag._n 25._o l._n 19_o pleasore_n read_v pleasure_n pag._n 37._o l._n 7._o be_v read_v be_v pag._n 86._o l._n 19_o now_o read_v new_a pag._n 44._o l._n 3._o this_o read_v he_o pag._n 104._o l._n 16._o of_o read_v in_o pag._n 121._o lin_v 32._o a_o read_v be_v pag._n 132._o l._n ult._n dirive_v read_v drive_v in_o the_o answer_n and_o rejoinder_n pag._n 4._o l._n 10._o in_o mark_fw-mi if_o read_v it_o pag._n 19_o line_n penult_n in_fw-it mark_fw-mi seipsum_fw-la read_v sensum_fw-la pag._n 24._o l._n 1._o god_n though_o read_v god_n though_o ibid._n l._n 16._o can_v not_o read_v can_v not_o pag._n 56._o lin_v 30._o in_o mark_fw-mi this_o read_v thus_o pag._n 71._o lin_v 32._o in_o mark_fw-mi but_o must_v read_v but_o they_o must_v pag·_fw-la 74._o l._n 16._o in_o mark_fw-mi do_v to_o prove_v read_v do_v prove_v pag._n 80._o l._n 30._o in_o mark_fw-mi votay_v read_v votary_n pag._n 81._o lin_v 32._o philip_n &_o in_o deal_n &_o ibid._n l._n 34._o in_o innumerable_a deal_n in_o pag._n 100_o l._n 1._o &_o 3._o suppositious_a read_v supposititious_a pag._n 115._o l._n 16._o in_o coll_n read_v in_o loc_n pag._n 119._o l._n 12._o opinion_n read_v opinion_n pag._n 129._o lin_v 1._o axione_n read_v axiom_n pag._n 32._o l._n 34._o in_o mark_fw-mi a_o positive_a read_v a_o positive_a precept_n pag._n 141._o l._n 11._o in_o mark_fw-mi sect._n 3._o read_v sect._n 1_o pag._n 142._o l._n 26._o in_o mark_fw-mi the_o argue_v read_v he_o argue_v pag._n 144._o lin_v 21._o viz._n read_v verò_fw-la pag._n 145._o l._n 10._o relive_v read_v relieve_v pag._n 152._o l._n 33._o in_o mark_fw-mi anthropomorphilae_n read_v anthropomorphitae_n 177._o l._n 9_o in_o mark_fw-mi praebitur_fw-la read_v praebebitur_fw-la pag._n 180._o l._n 22._o wash_v awayt_n read_v wash_v away_o pag._n 227._o l._n 5._o if_o they_o deal_n if_o pag._n 229._o lin_v 23._o in_o mark_fw-mi he_o that_o deal_n he_o pag._n 141._o lin_v 9_o reverend_a read_v renew_v pag._n 378._o l._n 22._o satisfaction_n read_v satisfaction_n pag._n 396._o l._n 4._o royal_a read_v royal_a pag._n 399._o l._n 2._o fallable_n read_v fallible_a the_o true_a picture_n of_o d·_v white_a minister_n or_o the_o censure_n of_o his_o reply_n unto_o m._n fisher._n the_o reason_n of_o this_o title_n this_o short_a censure_n be_v prefix_v under_o the_o name_n of_o your_o picture_n that_o the_o rejoinder_n may_v correspond_v in_o proportion_n unto_o your_o reply_n the_o beginning_n whereof_o be_v consecrate_v by_o a_o image_n of_o your_o 1._o your_o for_o he_o teach_v
against_o the_o context_n and_o order_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n word_n this_o sentence_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o be_v five_o sentence_n or_o verse_n after_o this_o other_o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n yea_o these_o word_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ever_o be_v absolute_o the_o very_a last_o wherewith_o christ_n shut_v up_o his_o discourse_n about_o sacramental_a take_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n wherefore_o not_o to_o be_v force_v to_o grant_v that_o christ_n promise_v as_o much_o to_o the_o eat_n of_o sacramental_a bread_n only_o as_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v both_o you_o be_v force_v to_o deny_v the_o text_n and_o context_n of_o god_n word_n if_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n indeed_o speak_v the_o word_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o but_o that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o sacramental_a bread_n nor_o of_o sacramental_a eat_n i_o reply_v first_o why_o then_o do_v you_o not_o acknowledge_v this_o text_n aswell_o as_o this_o other_o if_o any_o eat_v this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o second_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o for_o that_o the_o seven_o chap._n of_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o sacramental_a eat_n &_o drink_v yourself_o affirm_v many_o time_n in_o this_o reply_n as_o pag._n 395._o lin_v 8._o pag._n 406._o lin_v 13._o &_o pag._n 466._o lin_v 20._o a_o second_o example_n of_o your_o be_v force_v to_o deny_v or_o not_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o text_n of_o god_n word_n be_v find_v pag._n 75._o there_o the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v visible_o universal_a refer_v himself_o for_o proof_n to_o the_o apocalips_n 20._o v._o 8._o you_o in_o lieu_n of_o the_o eight_o verse_n cite_v the_o seven_o then_o shall_v satan_n be_v let_v loose_a &_o shall_v go_v forth_o and_o seduce_v nation_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n gog_n and_o magog_n &_o shall_v gather_v they_o into_o a_o battle_n the_o number_n of_o who_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n which_o text_n be_v impertinent_a for_o it_o prove_v that_o the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v for_o multitude_n of_o man_n innumerable_a not_o the_o universal_a diffusion_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o his_o reign_n why_o stop_v you_o at_o the_o sea●enth_fw-mi verse_n why_o will_v you_o not_o proceed_v to_o set_v ●owne_n the_o word_n of_o the_o eight_o that_o be_v under_o your_o ●yes_n unto_o which_o the_o jesuit_n marginal_a quotation_n refer_v you_o very_o you_o see_v that_o they_o prove_v the_o jesuit_n intent_n so_o clear_o as_o you_o know_v not_o what_o to_o re●ly_o for_o the_o text_n say_v 8.20_o say_v apoc._n 8.20_o of_o antichrists_n pursuivant_n ●hey_n go_v over_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_a a●out_n the_o camp_n of_o saint_n and_o thc_a belove_a city_n by_o which_o ●lace_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o camp_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o beloved_a city_n to_o wit_n the_o church_n persecute_v by_o anti●hrist_n in_o his_o reign_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o ●he_n earth_n ●ou_fw-mi be_v force_v to_o go_v against_o christ_n express_a word_n §._o 2._o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 409._o argue_v in_o this_o sort_n if_o god_n can_v put_v a_o whole_a camel_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n be_v he_o not_o ●ble_n to_o put_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o a_o consecrate_a host_n ●ut_fw-la god_n can_v put_v a_o camel_n in_o a_o needle_n eye_n witness_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 19_o v._n 24.25.26_o where_o have_v say_v it_o be_v ●ore_o easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n then_o ●or_a a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n when●is_fw-la disciple_n do_v much_o wonder_n thereat_o demand_v who_o then_o can_v be_v save_v he_o answer_v with_o man_n this_o 〈◊〉_d impossible_a but_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a unto_o god_n our_o answer_n say_v you_o pag_n 412._o be_v that_o these_o words●ll_a ●ll_z thing_n be_v possible_a to_o god_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o latter_a ●art_n of_o christ_n speech_n touch_v the_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o ●eaven_n and_o not_o to_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o the_o needle_n 〈◊〉_d all_o thing_n agreeable_a to_o truth_n and_o which_o god_n will_v have_v do_v be_v possible_a but_o that_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o truth_n for_o a_o camel_n retain_v his_o quantity_n with_o the_o whole_a body_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n or_o that_o god_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v do_v deserve_v to_o be_v credit_v when_o the_o adversary_n prove_v it_o by_o divine_a revelation_n or_o by_o other_o demonstration_n thus_o you_o force_v by_o your_o adversary_n to_o deny_v the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n as_o i_o demonstrate_v by_o three_o argument_n first_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v name_v many_o thing_n as_o difficile_a hard_a and_o impossible_a with_o man_n conclude_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n only_o but_o all_o be_v possible_a with_o god_n then_o to_o say_v that_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n only_o &_o not_o all_o be_v possible_a to_o god_n be_v direct_o to_o contradict_v our_o saviour_n &_o to_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n our_o saviour_n have_v name_v many_o thing_n as_o hard_o difficile_a and_o impossible_a unto_o man_n to_o wit_n that_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n and_o that_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n conclude_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n only_o but_o all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n apud_fw-la deu●_n omne_fw-la possibilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la 10.27_o sunt_fw-la matth._n 19.16_o mar._n 10.27_o all_o these_o hard_a and_o difficile_a thing_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n ergo_fw-la you_o in_o say_v that_o one_o sort_n of_o these_o thing_n by_o he_o name_v as_o hard_a &_o difficile_a be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n do_v direct_o contradict_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n second_o to_o affirm_v that_o a_o camel_n passage_n through_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o direct_o against_o this_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n then_o to_o say_v that_o a_o rich_a man_n entrance_n into_o heaven_n be_v impossible_a this_o i_o prove_v if_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o of_o the_o two_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n be_v more_o easy_a that_o be_v less_o difficile_a then_o to_o deny_v the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n to_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o direct_o against_o our_o saviour_n ●ord_n then_o so_o to_o affirm_v of_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o 〈◊〉_d kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o if_o thing_n more_o easy_a &_o ●●sse_n difficile_a be_v impossible_a how_o much_o more_o thing_n ●●sse_n easy_a and_o more_o difficile_a if_o we_o may_v with_o truth_n affirm_v that_o god_n can_v do_v what_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n we_o know_v to_o be_v more_o easy_a much_o rather_o may_v we_o affirm_v god_n can_v do_v what_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v more_o difficile_a this_o be_v clear_a ●ut_v our_o saviour_n say_v most_o express_o that_o it_o be_v more_o ea●y_n that_o be_v less_o difficile_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o ●_o needle_n eye_n then_o for_o a_o richman_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ergo_fw-la your_o say_v the_o pas●ing_n of_o a_o camel_n through_o a_o needle_n eye_n to_o be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o against_o this_o place_n of_o his_o word_n ●hen_o have_v you_o so_o affirm_v of_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v in●o_o heaven_n three_o if_o this_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v refer_v direct_o proper_o and_o special●y_n unto_o a_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n &_o not_o unto_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o heaven_n than_o you_o do_v direct_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n but_o that_o ●his_v speech_n all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v in_o this_o manner_n ●eferred_v unto_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n &_o not_o unto_o the_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o heaven_n ●s_v evident_a by_o the_o drift_n of_o this_o place_n for_o our_o lord_n by_o this_o discourse_n do_v direct_o intend_v to_o show_v not_o a_o rich_a man_n salvation_n to_o be_v possible_a but_o the_o apostle_n argument_n which_o move_v they_o to_o despair_v of_o the_o salvation_n of_o rich-man_n not_o to_o be_v good_a they_o hear_v our_o saviour_n say_v it_o be_v more_o easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n then_o that_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v in_o
●f_n his_o spirit_n inward_o move_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o adhere_v unto_o a_o infallible_a external_a ground_n of_o assurance_n propose_v unto_o he_o god_n by_o the_o help_n of_o his_o grace_n make_v he_o apprehend_v divine_o of_o the_o authority_n thereof_o this_o second_o manner_n of_o inward_a assurance_n be_v ordinary_o give_v unto_o every_o christian_a without_o 6._o without_o triden_n sess_v 6._o can._n 3._o arausican_n 2._o can._n 6._o which_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o believe_v supernatural_o and_o as_o he_o ought_v unto_o salvation_n the_o first_o manner_n of_o assurance_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n such_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v wherefore_o protestant_n if_o they_o callenge_v this_o first_o manner_n of_o inward_a teach_n &_o assurance_n they_o approve_v enthusiasm_n &_o immediate_a revelation_n which_o in_o the_o swenkfeldian_o they_o seem_v to_o condemn_v if_o they_o challenge_v only_o the_o second_o manner_n of_o inward_a teach_n and_o assurance_n then_o beside_o inward_a light_n they_o must_v assign_v a_o external_a sufficient_a ground_n why_o they_o believe_v these_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n &_o then_o i_o ask_v what_o ground_n this_o be_v beside_o tradition_n second_o they_o will_v object_v that_o though_o they_o have_v no_o infallible_a ground_n beside_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o teach_v immediate_o in_o prophetical_a manner_n because_o they_o be_v also_o teach_v by_o a_o external_a probable_a motive_n to_o wit_v the_o church_n tradition_n i_o answer_v that_o except_o they_o assign_v a_o external_a infallible_a mean_n beside_o god_n inward_a teach_n they_o can_v avoid_v but_o they_o challenge_v immediate_a revelation_n for_o whosoever_o know_v thing_n assure_o by_o the_o inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n without_o a_o external_a infallible_a motive_n unto_o which_o he_o do_v adhere_v be_v assure_v prophetical_o though_o he_o have_v some_o external_a probable_a motive_n so_o to_o think_v s._n peter_n have_v some_o conjectural_a sign_n of_o simon_n magus_n his_o perversity_n &_o incorrigible_a malice_n yet_o see_v esse_fw-la see_v act._n 8.32_o in_o felle_fw-la amaritudinis_fw-la &_o obligatione_fw-la peccati_fw-la video_fw-la te_fw-la esse_fw-la he_o know_v it_o assure_o we_o believe_v he_o know_v it_o by_o the_o light_n of_o prophesy_n because_o beside_o inward_a assurance_n he_o have_v no_o external_a infallible_a ground_n if_o one_o see_v a_o man_n give_v public_o alm_n though_o he_o perceive_v probable_a token_n &_o sign_n that_o he_o do_v it_o out_o of_o a_o vayneglorious_a intention_n yet_o can_v he_o be_v sure_a thereof_o but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n because_o the_o other_o token_n be_v not_o ground_n sufficient_a to_o make_v he_o sure_o for_o if_o a_o man_n be_v sure_a &_o have_v no_o ground_n of_o this_o assurance_n in_o any_o thing_n out_o of_o his_o own_o hart_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o be_v assure_v immediate_o &_o only_o by_o god_n inward_a speak_v wherefore_o protestant_n if_o they_o will_v disclaim_v in_o truth_n and_o not_o in_o word_n only_o from_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o teach_n they_o must_v either_o grant_v tradition_n to_o be_v infallible_a or_o else_o assign_v some_o external_a infallible_a ground_n beside_o tradition_n whereby_o they_o be_v teach_v what_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v three_o they_o will_v say_v they_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o external_a infallible_a ground_n beside_o tradition_n to_o wit_n by_o certain_a light_n lustre_n evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o they_o see_v to_o blaze_v &_o emane_n from_o the_o thing_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v heavenly_a i_o answer_v if_o they_o do_v see_v such_o lustre_n and_o light_n that_o clear_o &_o not_o only_o probable_o convince_v the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v heavenly_a truth_n they_o be_v not_o indeed_o assure_v by_o immediate_a dark_a revelation_n but_o by_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o heavenly_a knowledge_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o supernatural_a light_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n believe_v which_o be_v a_o paradox_n and_o pretence_n far_o more_o false_a and_o sensible_o absurd_a then_o be_v the_o challenge_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n or_o enthusiasm_n as_o have_v be_v show_v wherefore_o see_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v no_o external_a mean_n beside_o catholic_a tradition_n to_o make_v man_n know_v perpetual_o until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n what_o doctrine_n &_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n publish_v it_o be_v clear_a unto_o every_o christian_a that_o this_o be_v the_o mean_n by_o he_o choose_v &_o which_o he_o do_v assist_v that_o it_o can_v be_v obnoxious_a unto_o error_n so_o that_o precedent_o and_o independent_o of_o scripture_n the_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o christian_a pastor_n &_o father_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a through_o divine_a special_a assistance_n and_o therefore_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o faith_n infallible_a assurance_n the_o four_o principle_n prove_v §._o 6._o if_o we_o be_v resolve_v that_o save_v truth_n be_v that_o which_o god_n reveal_v that_o he_o reveal_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n publish_v the_o doctrine_n publish_v by_o then_o the_o catholic_a christian_a tradition_n our_o search_n be_v end_v when_o we_o have_v find_v the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n here_o the_o four_o enemy_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n offer_v himself_o to_o wit_n the_o wilful_a ignorant_a these_o kind_n of_o man_n not_o only_o hold_v against_o pagan_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v that_o only_o which_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n against_o jew_n the_o reveal_v of_o god_n to_o be_v only_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o in_o word_n they_o condemn_v the_o heretic_n &_o profess_v that_o no_o doctrine_n be_v true_o apostolical_a but_o the_o catholic_n yet_o in_o resolve_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o catholic_a they_o follow_v the_o partiality_n of_o their_o affection_n these_o be_v term_v by_o 1._o by_o de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred_a c._n 1._o s._n augustine_n credentes_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la believer_n of_o heretic_n build_v upon_o the_o seem_a learning_n and_o sanctity_n of_o some_o man_n be_v therein_o so_o wilful_a as_o to_o venture_v their_o soul_n that_o such_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a not_o care_v nor_o know_v what_o they_o say_v nor_o what_o the_o word_n catholic_a put_v into_o the_o creed_n by_o the_o apostle_n do_v import_v some_o be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a do_v signify_v the_o same_o as_o conform_v unto_o scripture_n and_o so_o what_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a they_o resolve_v by_o the_o light_n and_o lustre_n of_o the_o doctrine_n or_o by_o the_o in_o ward_n teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o they_o fall_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o heresy_n and_o become_v not_o so_o much_o believer_n of_o heretic_n as_o heretic_n some_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n catholic_a doctrine_n true_o catholic_a that_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o christian_a world_n of_o father_n unto_o christian_a world_n of_o child_n yet_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o to_o give_v this_o title_n unto_o sect_n late_o spring_v up_o which_o through_o pretend_a singular_a illumination_n get_v by_o peruse_v the_o scripture_n have_v choose_v form_n of_o faith_n opposite_a one_o against_o another_o reform_v against_o the_o form_n to_o they_o deliver_v by_o their_o ancestor_n these_o sect_n i_o say_v they_o term_v catholic_a which_o not_o to_o be_v catholic_a in_o this_o sense_n be_v as_o evident_a as_o that_o night_n be_v not_o day_n some_o through_o wilful_a ignorance_n no_o less_o gross_o divide_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a according_a to_o the_o division_n of_o country_n name_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n which_o speech_n have_v no_o more_o sense_n than_o this_o a_o fashion_n ever_o since_o christ_n universal_o over_o the_o world_n new_o begin_v and_o proper_a unto_o england_n against_o this_o enemy_n true_a religion_n be_v resolve_v in_o this_o four_o principle_n the_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o roman_n by_o roman_a we_o understand_v not_o only_o the_o religion_n profess_v within_o the_o city_n &_o diocese_n of_o rome_n but_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o they_o that_o any_o where_fw-mi acknowledge_v the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n which_o now_o be_v the_o roman_a bishop_n about_o this_o principle_n faith_n be_v assure_v by_o a_o four_o perfection_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prime_a verity_n reveal_v truth_n which_o be_v that_o he_o can_v permit_v that_o the_o know_v of_o save_v doctrine_n be_v impossible_a hence_o i_o argue_v god_n be_v prime_a verity_n reveal_v can_v permit_v the_o mean_n of_o know_v his_o save_a truth_n to_o be_v hide_v nor_o a_o false_a mean_n to_o
be_v so_o adorn_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a as_o the_o true_a become_v indiscernible_a from_o it_o but_o if_o the_o roman_a be_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_a tradition_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o tradition_n be_v hide_v yea_o a_o false_a church_n have_v so_o clear_o the_o mark_n of_o catholic_a that_o no_o other_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n pretend_v to_o be_v rather_o catholic_a then_o it_o that_o be_v to_o have_v doctrine_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o whole_a world_n of_o christian_a father_n unto_o whole_a world_n of_o christian_a child_n hence_o either_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o know_v assure_o the_o save_a truth_n or_o else_o the_o mean_n be_v immediate_a revelation_n that_o be_v inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n without_o any_o external_a infallible_a mean_n or_o else_o scripture_n know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o true_o sense_v by_o the_o light_n lustre_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o way_n of_o teach_v it_o be_v certain_a god_n do_v not_o use_v towards_o his_o militant_a church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n for_o teach_v of_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a truth_n by_o the_o light_n lustre_n and_o shine_v of_o the_o thing_n or_o doctrine_n be_v proper_a unto_o the_o church_n triumphant_a inward_a assurance_n without_o any_o external_a infallible_a ground_n to_o assure_v man_n of_o truth_n be_v proper_a unto_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o first_o publisher_n of_o christian_a religion_n hence_o i_o conclude_v that_o if_o god_n be_v the_o prime_a verity_n teach_v christian_a religion_n dark_o without_o make_v man_n see_v the_o light_n and_o lustre_n of_o thing_n believe_v and_o mediate_o by_o some_o external_a infallible_a mean_n upon_o which_o inward_a assurance_n must_v rely_v then_o he_o must_v ever_o conserve_v the_o catholic_a tradition_n and_o church_n visible_a and_o conspicuous_a that_o the_o same_o may_v without_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o otherwise_o they_o by_o the_o lustre_n of_o doctrine_n be_v discern_v to_o wit_n by_o sensible_a mark_n if_o any_o object_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o man_n in_o this_o search_n may_v be_v deceive_v through_o natural_a invincible_a fallibility_n of_o their_o organ_n and_o so_o no_o ground_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v altogether_o infallible_a i_o answer_v that_o evidence_n have_v by_o sense_n be_v but_o the_o private_a of_o one_o man_n be_v natural_o and_o physical_o infallible_a but_o when_o the_o same_o be_v also_o public_a and_o catholic_a that_o be_v when_o a_o whole_a world_n of_o man_n concur_v with_o he_o than_o his_o evidence_n be_v altogether_o infallible_a beside_o see_v god_n have_v resolve_v not_o to_o teach_v man_n immediate_o but_o will_v have_v they_o to_o cleave_v unto_o a_o external_a infallible_a mean_n &_o to_o find_v out_o this_o mean_n by_o the_o sensible_a evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n he_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o veracity_n to_o assist_v man_n sense_n with_o his_o providence_n that_o therein_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v when_o they_o use_v such_o diligence_n as_o man_n ordinary_o use_v that_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o their_o sense_n now_o what_o great_a evidence_n can_v one_o have_v that_o he_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o this_o matter_n of_o sense_n that_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n be_v the_o catholic_a that_o be_v doctrine_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o world_n of_o christian_a ancestor_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n unanimous_a among_o themselves_o in_o all_o matter_n they_o believe_v as_o faith_n what_o great_a assurance_n i_o say_v can_v one_o have_v that_o herein_o he_o see_v aright_o than_o a_o whole_a world_n of_o man_n profess_v to_o see_v the_o same_o that_o he_o do_v some_o may_v again_o object_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n set_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n but_o faith_n be_v resolution_n about_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v i_o answer_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v visible_a according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n &_o yet_o invisible_a according_a to_o the_o manner_n it_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o creed_n the_o three_o article_n he_o suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v evident_a unto_o sense_n and_o see_v even_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o be_v now_o believe_v of_o their_o posterity_n but_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o creed_n to_o wit_n that_o herein_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o his_o ancient_a prophet_n be_v fulfil_v that_o this_o be_v do_v in_o charity_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n i_o say_v that_o visible_a article_n be_v invisible_a and_o believe_v in_o the_o creed_n in_o like_a manner_n that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o catholic_a church_n pagan_n jew_n &_o heretic_n if_o they_o shut_v not_o their_o eye_n against_o the_o light_n do_v clear_o behold_v but_o that_o herein_o the_o word_n of_o god_n about_o the_o perpetual_a amplitude_n of_o his_o church_n be_v accomplish_v that_o this_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o god_n veracity_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o mean_n to_o learn_v save_v truth_n may_v not_o be_v hide_v this_o be_v a_o thing_n invisible_a &_o according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v propose_v in_o the_o creed_n second_o proposition_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v invisible_a according_a to_o the_o predicate_v or_o thing_n believe_v but_o not_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o subject_n or_o thing_n whereof_o we_o believe_v the_o thing_n the_o apostle_n believe_v of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v thing_n invisible_a but_o the_o subject_n and_o person_n of_o who_o they_o do_v believe_v be_v to_o they_o visible_a &_o see_v yea_o god_n do_v of_o purpose_n by_o his_o prophet_n foretell_v certain_a token_n whereby_o that_o subject_n may_v by_o sense_n be_v see_v and_o discern_v from_o all_o other_o that_o may_v pretend_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n or_o else_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n to_o teach_v the_o truth_n have_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n in_o this_o sort_n the_o predicate_a or_o thing_n believe_v in_o this_o article_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n holy_a be_v invisible_a but_o the_o subject_n to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a church_n which_o we_o affirm_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v holy_a in_o her_o doctrine_n be_v visible_a and_o conspicuous_a unto_o all_o yea_o god_n have_v of_o purpose_n foretell_v sign_n and_o token_n whereby_o the_o same_o by_o sense_n may_v be_v clear_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o that_o may_v pretend_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a for_o be_v not_o this_o subject_n the_o catholic_a church_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v holy_a and_o infallible_a in_o her_o teach_n visible_a and_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o that_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o what_o use_n be_v it_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o infallible_a teach_a church_n in_o the_o world_n hide_a we_o know_v not_o where_o as_o a_o needle_n in_o a_o bottle_n of_o hay_n the_o end_n of_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n these_o thing_n suppose_v the_o reader_n will_v have_v no_o difficulty_n to_o discern_v how_o frivolous_a the_o minister_n exception_n be_v against_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o believe_a doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n into_o perpetual_a tradition_n and_o how_o solid_a the_o jesuit_n discourse_n be_v which_o here_o ensue_v the_o first_o ground_n that_o a_o christian_a resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o perpetual_a tradition_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n §._o 1._o before_o i_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o principle_n some_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v presuppose_v which_o i_o think_v protestant_n will_v not_o deny_v first_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v or_o attain_v to_o the_o blissful_a vision_n of_o god_n without_o firm_a and_o assure_a apprehension_n of_o divine_a &_o supernatural_a truth_n concern_v his_o last_o end_n and_o the_o mean_n to_o arrive_v thereunto_o second_o that_o this_o assure_a apprehension_n be_v not_o have_v by_o a_o doctrine_n a_o the_o minister_n here_o grant_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o have_v by_o clear_a &_o evident_a sight_n but_o afterward_o he_o say_v the_o same_o be_v resolve_v by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n clear_a and_o evident_a sight_n nor_o get_v by_o demonstration_n or_o humane_a discourse_n by_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n nor_o can_v be_v sufficient_o have_v by_o credit_n give_v to_o mere_o humane_a authority_n but_o only_o by_o faith_n ground_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reveal_v unto_o man_n thing_n that_o otherwise_o be_v know_v only_o to_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n three_o that_o god_n
of_o waldo_n wickliff_n and_o husse_n fabulae_fw-la sunt_fw-la they_o be_v fable_n you_o turn_v as_o by_o he_o speak_v of_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n the_o pharisee_n do_v indeed_o corrupt_a scripture_n but_o how_o by_o logical_a deduction_n out_o of_o the_o same_o according_a to_o your_o protestant_a and_o the_o common_a heretical_a fashion_n pretend_v great_a skill_n than_o all_o their_o ancestor_n that_o they_o do_v affirm_v that_o their_o special_a observation_n be_v tradition_n unwritten_a from_o moses_n the_o scripture_n have_v not_o a_o word_n yea_o the_o thing_n they_o most_o of_o all_o object_v against_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o write_a tradition_n of_o moses_n about_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n day_n joan._n 7._o from_o which_o precept_n not_o by_o tradition_n unwritten_a but_o by_o logical_a inference_n they_o conclude_v that_o our_o lord_n break_v the_o sabboth-day_n by_o heal_a disease_a person_n thereon_o so_o that_o pharasaicall_a tradition_n be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o be_v doctrine_n unwritten_a as_o you_o imagine_v but_o to_o be_v doctrine_n conclude_v from_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o reason_n and_o logic_n just_a according_a to_o your_o protestant_a pretence_n also_o what_o you_o say_v that_o the_o father_n tradition_n unwritten_a be_v not_o our_o doctrine_n but_o you_o be_v speak_v because_o you_o will_v have_v man_n so_o think_v though_o they_o err_v not_o because_o you_o can_v think_v the_o same_o to_o be_v so_o in_o truth_n for_o thus_o i_o argue_v against_o this_o your_o silly_a shift_n the_o father_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o word_n understand_v by_o tradition_n apostolical_a unwritten_a dogmata_fw-la quae_fw-la peti_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la è_fw-la sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o can_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o such_o certitude_n as_o they_o may_v thereupon_o be_v believe_v as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o you_o pretend_v and_o glory_n that_o all_o your_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v ex_fw-la sacris_fw-la scripture_n petitae_fw-la so_o draw_v and_o gather_v from_o holy_a scripture_n as_o they_o be_v believe_v as_o faith_n only_o upon_o this_o rule_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v great_a vanity_n for_o you_o to_o say_v that_o the_o father_n by_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a understand_v the_o doctrine_n not_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o of_o your_o protestant_a separation_n and_o if_o from_o generality_n upon_o which_o minister_n who_o drift_n be_v to_o deceyve_v do_v willing_o dwell_v we_o descend_v to_o particular_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o you_o reject_v those_o doctrine_n &_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o fabulous_a dream_n and_o human_a invention_n which_o the_o father_n express_o and_o in_o term_n affirm_v to_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a decease_a protestant_n esteem_v fabulous_a the_o pop._n the_o the_o chrys._n homil_n 69._o ad_fw-la pop._n father_n affirm_v it_o be_v ab_fw-la apostolis_n sancitum_fw-la ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o bind_n of_o the_o cleargyman_n and_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a ministry_n to_o single_a life_n and_o from_o woo_v &_o wive_n do_v not_o protestant_n detest_v as_o impious_a 2._o impious_a impious_a council_n carthag_n can._n 2._o yet_o the_o father_n say_v haec_fw-la docu●runt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la haec_fw-la seruavit_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v this_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o ancient_n that_o it_o be_v damnable_a sin_n for_o votary_n to_o marry_v after_o their_o vow_n do_v not_o protestant_n contemn_v as_o a_o fabulous_a invention_n &_o yet_o 61._o yet_o yet_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 61._o the_o father_n say_v tradiderunt_fw-la sancti_fw-la dei_fw-la apostoli_fw-la this_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n of_o god_n the_o custom_n of_o make_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n on_o the_o forehead_n protestant_n deride_v as_o foolish_a 27._o foolish_a foolish_a basil._n the_o spirit_n sanct._n c._n 27._o yet_o the_o father_n affirm_v hoc_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la patres_fw-la nostri_fw-la in_o silentio_fw-la sine_fw-la literis_fw-la it_o be_v teach_v by_o our_o father_n the_o apostle_n in_o silent_a tradition_n without_o writing_n the_o fast_a of_o lent_n be_v it_o not_o in_o neglect_n and_o derision_n with_o protestant_n &_o yet_o the_o montan._n the_o the_o hieron_n epist._n ad_fw-la marcell_n de_fw-fr erroribus_fw-la montan._n father_n say_v as_o we_o do_v quadragesiman_n semel_fw-la in_o anno_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditione_n ieiunamus_fw-la we_o fast_o one_o lent_n a_o year_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o protestant_n also_o scorn_v the_o feast_n of_o ember-week_n four_o time_n in_o the_o year_n and_o yet_o the_o pentecost_n the_o the_o leo_fw-la de_fw-fr ieiunio_fw-la sexti_fw-la mensis_fw-la &_o serm._n 6._o de_fw-fr pentecost_n father_n say_v ex_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditione_n seruantur_fw-la they_o be_v receyve_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o fast_o one_o friday_n or_o the_o sixth_o day_n of_o the_o week_n in_o memory_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n protestant_n condemn_v as_o superstitious_a yet_o 75._o yet_o yet_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 75._o the_o father_n say_v hoc_fw-la decreverunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la the_o apostle_n make_v this_o decree_n and_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n from_o they_o have_v perpetual_o observe_v it_o the_o make_n and_o bless_v of_o holy_a water_n do_v not_o protestant_n reject_v as_o magical_a yet_o the_o 27._o the_o the_o basil._n the_o spir_n san_fw-it c._n 27._o father_n say_v express_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o mingle_v water_n with_o wine_n in_o the_o chalice_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v think_v by_o protestant_n to_o be_v fabulous_a but_o by_o the_o father_n 3._o father_n father_n cyprian_a lib._n 1._o ep._n 3._o dominica_n institutio_fw-la the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o tradition_n unwritten_a derive_v to_o us._n luther_n dare_v to_o cast_v off_o with_o a_o jest_n the_o commandment_n not_o to_o receive_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o fast_v that_o so_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v enter_v in_o at_o our_o mouth_n before_o other_o meat_n 6._o meat_n meat_n aug._n ep._n 118_o ad_fw-la januar_n c._n 6._o yet_o the_o father_n say_v hoc_fw-la placuit_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la christus_fw-la per_fw-la apostolos_fw-la disposuit_fw-la it_o please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o by_o his_o inspiration_n the_o apostle_n do_v so_o appoint_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o regulam_fw-la of_o of_o aug._n lib._n 4._o in_o julian._n &_o leo_fw-la primus_fw-la ep._n 14._o exorcizandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la secundum_fw-la apostolican_n regulam_fw-la exorcism_n &_o exsufflation_n use_v in_o baptism_n the_o traditam_fw-la the_o the_o origen_n homil._n 5._o in_o num._n a_o magno_fw-la pontifice_fw-la christo_fw-la &_o eius_fw-la filiis_fw-la apostolis_n traditam_fw-la form_n of_o interrogation_n answer_n and_o other_o ceremony_n that_o instituit_fw-la that_o that_o fabian_n ep._n 2._o ad_fw-la oriental_n christus_fw-la instituit_fw-la they_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v afterward_o chrism_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o balm_n traditam_fw-la balm_n balm_n tertul._n li._n 1._o ad_fw-la ux_fw-la apostolica_fw-la praescriptio_fw-la epiphan_n haer_fw-mi 50._o propter_fw-la eminentiam_fw-la celebrationis_fw-la traditam_fw-la that_o they_o who_o have_v be_v marry_v more_o than_o once_o be_v not_o promote_v unto_o priesthood_n out_o of_o reverence_n unto_o that_o dignity_n voverant_fw-la dignity_n dignity_n aug._n lib._n 17._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 4._o hoc_fw-la votum_fw-la illi_fw-la potentissimi_fw-la voverant_fw-la that_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o vow_n of_o religion_n perfection_n that_o exordium_n that_o that_o chrys._n homil_n 17._o ad_fw-la paph_n antiochen_n a_o christo_fw-la introducta_fw-la casian_n coenobitarum_fw-la disciplina_fw-la tempore_fw-la praedicationis_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la sumpserat_fw-la exordium_n monastical_a profession_n begin_v by_o their_o institution_n colimus_fw-la institution_n institution_n tertul._n de_fw-fr corona_n militis_fw-la anniversarios_n dies_fw-la colimus_fw-la the_o keep_a festival_n day_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n decease_v 1._o decease_v decease_v council_n antioc_n apostol_n citat_fw-la in_o 7._o synod_n act_n 1._o the_o place_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n in_o the_o church_n 7._o church_n church_n damascen_n orat_fw-la 4._o the_o imagine_v synod_n nicen_n 2._o act_n 7._o their_o worship_n mystagog_n worship_n worship_n aug._n serm._n 17._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apost_n &_o cyril_n cathec_fw-la 5._o mystagog_n to_o commend_v ourselves_o unto_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n decease_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o mass_n these_o thing_n protestant_n detest_v as_o superstition_n all_o which_o yet_o the_o father_n maintain_v to_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n metamorphize_v the_o word_n profitable_a as_o to_o make_v it_o signify_v the_o same_o with_o the_o word_n sufficient_a which_o be_v very_o hard_a yet_o be_v the_o text_n much_o over-short_a to_o prove_v their_o intent_n that_o scripture_n alone_o
of_o the_o church_n disagree_v about_o matter_n which_o they_o preach_v as_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v their_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n be_v of_o credit_n therein_o or_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o persuade_v who_o will_v or_o can_v firm_o believe_v disagree_v witness_n upon_o their_o word_n and_o this_o truth_n this_o by_o this_o note_n protestant_n be_v convince_v not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o protestant_a church_n allow_v that_o dissonant_n doctrine_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n she_o permit_v that_o her_o preacher_n condemn_v each_o other_o as_o heretic_n without_o disclaim_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o either_o side_n for_o she_o embrace_v in_o her_o communion_n both_o lutheran_n who_o preach_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o carnal_a manducation_n of_o christ_n true_a body_n by_o the_o wicked_a luther_n tom_n 3._o germ._n fol._n 264._o and_o caluinist_n who_o detest_v this_o carnal_a manducation_n as_o blasphemous_a and_o impious_a caluin_n admonit_fw-la 3._o ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n that_o allow_v of_o dissonant_n preach_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o how_o can_v she_o be_v the_o one_o true_a church_n which_o allow_v that_o doctrine_n she_o know_v to_o be_v false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o religion_n &_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n the_o protestant_a church_n know_v that_o of_o contrary_a doctrine_n the_o one_o side_n must_v needs_o be_v false_a therefore_o consent_v that_o both_o side_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o faith_n &_o as_o save_v truth_n she_o yield_v that_o doctrine_n knowne_o false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n and_o save_a truth_n and_o so_o be_v mistress_n of_o falsehood_n as_o much_o as_o of_o truth_n consent_n must_v be_v conspicuous_a and_o evident_a for_o if_o in_o outward_a appearance_n and_o show_n preacher_n dissent_v one_o from_o another_o in_o main_n &_o material_a doctrine_n their_o authority_n be_v craze_v and_o their_o testimony_n of_o no_o esteem_n howsoever_o perchance_o their_o dissension_n may_v be_v by_o some_o distinction_n so_o colour_v that_o one_o can_v reader_n can_v one_o can_v convince_v a_o obstinate_a gaynsayer_n &_o wrester_n of_o word_n but_o still_o he_o will_v wrangle_v yet_o may_v he_o be_v convince_v that_o he_o do_v falsify_v and_o wrong_v author_n in_o his_o interpretation_n and_o this_o evident_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o indifferent_a reader_n convince_v he_o that_o will_v bold_o undertake_v to_o defend_v as_o 42_o as_o d._n field_n lib._n 3._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 42_o doctor_n field_n undertake_v for_o protestant_n that_o their_o dissension_n be_v but_o verbal_a but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n do_v the_o accuse_a dissentioner_n allow_v this_o doctor_n reconciliation_n do_v they_o give_v over_o contention_n thereupon_o no_o but_o profess_v that_o such_o reconciler_n miss_v of_o their_o meaning_n &_o that_o they_o disagree_v substantial_o about_o the_o very_a prime_a article_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v these_o man_n be_v witness_n of_o credit_n for_o substantial_a article_n concern_v which_o there_o be_v open_o confess_v &_o profess_a dissension_n among_o they_o five_o i_o infer_v that_o this_o church_n be_v universal_a spread_v over_o all_o nation_n that_o she_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o moral_o where_o moral_o that_o be_v according_a unto_o common_a humane_a reputation_n by_o which_o a_o thing_n diffuse_v over_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n &_o famous_o know_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 1.12_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o church_n be_v still_o universal_a and_o every_o where_o by_o this_o be_v answer_v all_o the_o minister_n bring_v upon_o mistake_v of_o moral_o moral_o speak_v be_v so_o diffuse_v that_o the_o whole_a know_a world_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o she_o as_o of_o a_o worthy_a and_o credible_a witness_n of_o christian_a tradition_n howsoever_o her_o outward_a glory_n and_o splendour_n peace_n and_o tranquillity_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v in_o some_o place_n more_o or_o less_o and_o not_o ever_o in_o all_o place_n at_o once_o a_o truth_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o may_v be_v evident_o prove_v out_o of_o 34.37_o of_o the_o text_n apocalyps_n 20.8_o say_v they_o the_o pursevamt_n of_o antichrist_n go_v upon_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v about_o the_o camp_n of_o saint_n &_o belove_a city_n which_o place_n prove_v clear_o that_o the_o church_n and_o camp_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n this_o verse_n the_o minister_n mistake_v of_o purpose_n and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o cit_v the_o seven_o and_o very_o absurd_o say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v persecute_v christian_n that_o be_v put_v they_o in_o prison_n &_o kill_v they_o where_o they_o be_v not_o and_o protestant_n themselves_o affirm_v that_o even_o all_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v right_o famous_a &_o continue_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n bullinger_n in_o apocal._n 20._o fulke_o against_o the_o rhem._n in_o thess._n 2._o sect_n 5._o whitaker_n answer_n to_o m._n reynols_n preface_n p_o 34.37_o scripture_n apoc._n 20._o v._o 8._o that_o even_o in_o antichrists_n day_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v visible_o universal_a for_o she_o shall_v they_o be_v every_o where_o persecute_v which_o can_v not_o be_v except_o she_o be_v every_o where_o visible_a &_o conspicuous_a even_o to_o the_o wicked_a the_o reason_n of_o this_o perpetual_a visible_a universality_n be_v because_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o sole_a ordinary_a mean_n on_o which_o we_o ground_n faith_n for_o substantial_a point_n wherefore_o this_o tradition_n must_v be_v so_o deliver_v as_o it_o may_v be_v know_v to_o all_o man_n see_v god_n thereof_o god_n the_o minister_n say_v p._n 78._o l._n 22._o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v according_a to_o his_o antecedent_n will_v cite_v schoolman_n that_o say_v that_o god_n antecedent_n will_n be_v only_o a_o velleity_n a_o wish_n a_o complacence_n thence_o conclude_v that_o though_o god_n have_v antecedent_n will_v that_o all_o be_v save_v yet_o this_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o he_o always_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n by_o his_o antecedent_n will_v of_o man_n salvation_n wish_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n second_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o mean_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_a that_o all_o man_n in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o have_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o end_n to_o wit_n the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o as_o schoolman_n say_v virtual_o conditional_a that_o be_v god_n have_v a_o will_n that_o all_o man_n be_v save_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o if_o the_o course_n of_o his_o providence_n be_v not_o stop_v and_o man_n will_v cooperate_v with_o his_o grace_n whence_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o god_n do_v not_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o all_o man_n it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o on_o his_o part_n he_o wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o but_o even_o our_o minister_n pag._n 78._o lin_v 38._o grant_n that_o god_n wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n and_o of_o every_o individual_a person_n therefore_o god_n still_o make_v his_o church_n visible_o universal_a ut_fw-la neminem_fw-la lateat_fw-la as_o say_v s._n augustine_n that_o no_o man_n perish_v through_o the_o hiddennes_n and_o invisibility_n thereof_o will_v have_v all_o man_n without_o exception_n of_o any_o nation_n to_o be_v save_v &_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 2.4_o but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o still_o so_o diffuse_v in_o the_o world_n that_o all_o know_a church_n know_a the_o answerer_n write_v to_o his_o majesty_n &_o know_v the_o proverb_n sapienti_fw-la verbum_fw-la do_v intend_v by_o this_o word_n to_o insinuate_v how_o god_n provide_v mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o world_n whereof_o one_o part_n be_v many_o age_n unknown_a the_o solution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n much_o urge_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 78_o consist_v in_o these_o point_n first_o god_n our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v and_o die_v in_o this_o know_a world_n provide_v that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v still_o visible_o spread_v over_o the_o same_o &_o famous_o know_v second_o nation_n be_v not_o so_o unknown_a but_o by_o navigation_n and_o other_o such_o natural_a mean_n they_o may_v be_v discoveuer_v unto_o this_o world_n where_o our_o
ad_fw-la come_v philip._n &_o in_o 1._o ad_fw-la corinth_n this_o may_v convince_v our_o minister_n that_o his_o allegation_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n and_o that_o judgement_n of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o a_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o report_n of_o zealous_a complaint_n but_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o sight_n rule_v by_o unpartial_a search_n by_o which_o rule_n one_o may_v find_v in_o the_o catholic_a clergy_n thousand_o and_o thousand_o that_o show_v admirable_a charity_n special_o in_o convert_n infidel_n yea_o that_o win_v the_o glorious_a crown_n of_o angelical_a chastity_n for_o which_o they_o will_v never_o have_v strive_v have_v not_o the_o church_n bind_v they_o thereunto_o so_o that_o if_o human_a infirmity_n by_o occasion_n of_o this_o law_n make_v some_o man_n impure_a that_o otherwise_o perchance_o in_o marriage_n will_v have_v be_v chaste_a so_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o the_o same_o occasion_n work_v in_o innumerable_a angelical_a saint_n who_o have_v never_o be_v such_o but_o for_o the_o church_n exaction_n and_o this_o harvest_n make_v full_a recompense_n for_o that_o loss_n special_o see_v also_o many_o of_o such_o delinquent_n be_v not_o lose_v but_o save_v by_o penance_n yea_o become_v more_o excellent_a saint_n than_o they_o have_v be_v have_v they_o never_o fall_v chastity_n obedience_n charity_n in_o undergo_n labour_v for_o the_o help_n of_o soul_n fortitude_n in_o suffer_v of_o heroical_a martyrdom_n zeal_n and_o patience_n in_o the_o rough_a and_o rigorous_a treaty_n of_o their_o body_n by_o miraculous_a fast_n &_o another_o austeritye_n this_o sanctity_n shine_v not_o in_o all_o child_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o she_o more_o eminent_a preacher_n &_o professor_n which_o kind_n of_o sanctity_n together_o with_o miracle_n if_o the_o church_n do_v want_v she_o can_v not_o be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n of_o the_o truth_n unto_o infidel_n who_o common_o never_o begin_v to_o affect_v &_o admire_v christianity_n but_o upon_o the_o sight_n of_o such_o wonder_n of_o sanctity_n &_o other_o extraordinary_a work_n holy_a for_o doctrine_n in_o regard_n her_o tradition_n be_v divine_a and_o holy_a without_o any_o mixture_n of_o error_n for_o if_o the_o church_n can_v deliver_v by_o consent_n of_o ancestor_n together_o with_o truth_n some_o error_n her_o tradition_n even_o about_o truth_n be_v questionable_a &_o can_v not_o be_v believe_v upon_o the_o warrant_n of_o her_o tradition_n for_o who_o can_v without_o danger_n and_o secure_o feed_v on_o that_o dish_n that_o may_v aswell_o contain_v poison_n as_o wholesome_a sustenance_n and_o whereas_o some_o protestant_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o fundamental_a point_n but_o only_o in_o thing_n of_o less_o moment_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o in_o perpetual_a tradition_n she_o can_v err_v at_o all_o if_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v a_o small_a thing_n as_o receyve_v from_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v false_a one_o may_v call_v into_o question_n her_o tradition_n of_o moment_n for_o like_a as_o if_o we_o admit_v in_o the_o scripture_n error_n in_o small_a matter_n we_o can_v be_v sure_a of_o its_o infallibility_n in_o substantial_a matter_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o grant_v tradition_n perpetual_a to_o be_v false_a in_o thing_n of_o less_o importance_n we_o have_v no_o solid_a ground_n to_o defend_v her_o tradition_n as_o assure_v in_o other_o of_o moment_n wherefore_o as_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v god_n write_v word_n be_v false_a in_o some_o less_o matter_n as_o when_o it_o say_v s._n paul_n leave_v his_o cloak_n at_o troas_n err_v fundamental_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o consequence_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o doubt_v of_o every_o thing_n in_o scripture_n even_o so_o he_o that_o grant_v that_o some_o part_n of_o tradition_n or_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a may_v be_v false_a err_v substantial_o because_o he_o give_v cause_n to_o doubt_v of_o any_o tradition_n which_o yet_o as_o i_o have_v show_v be_v the_o prime_n and_o originalll_v ground_v of_o faith_n more_o tradition_n more_o the_o minister_n here_o rayl_v large_o &_o lusty_o term_v this_o assertion_n impudent_a antichristian_a profane_a bastardly_a etc._n etc._n yet_o the_o assertion_n be_v evident_a truth_n &_o his_o reason_n against_o it_o be_v of_o no_o force_n for_o they_o go_v not_o against_o the_o assertion_n but_o prove_v another_o thing_n to_o wit_n the_o excellency_n of_o scripture_n which_o none_o deny_v for_o tradition_n &_o scripture_n according_a to_o different_a comparison_n be_v equal_a &_o superior_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o compare_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o certainty_n of_o truth_n they_o be_v equal_a as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n define_v sess_v 4._o both_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o one_o write_a the_o other_o unwritten_a and_o so_o both_o infinite_o certain_a compare_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o depth_n sublimity_n and_o variety_n of_o doctrine_n the_o scripture_n be_v far_o superior_a unto_o tradition_n tradition_n be_v plain_a and_o easy_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o common_a capital_a and_o practical_a article_n of_o christianity_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o high_a &_o hide_a sense_n and_o furnish_v with_o great_a variety_n of_o example_n discourse_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o erudition_n aug._n epist._n 3._o compare_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o priority_n and_o evidence_n of_o be_v the_o apostle_n the_o scripture_n be_v posteriour_a unto_o tradition_n in_o time_n and_o knowledge_n and_o can_v be_v prove_v direct_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n &_o therefore_o god_n but_o by_o tradition_n as_o sometime_o not_o only_a father_n but_o even_a protestant_n afffirme_v as_o philosophy_n be_v more_o perfect_a than_o logic_n and_o rhetoric_n than_o grammar_n in_o respect_n of_o high_a &_o excellent_a knowledge_n yet_o logic_n be_v more_o prime_a original_a fundamental_a then_o philosophy_n grammar_n than_o rhetoric_n without_o the_o rule_n and_o principle_n whereof_o they_o can_v be_v learn_v even_o so_o tradition_n be_v more_o prime_a and_o original_a than_o scripture_n though_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o depth_n and_o sublimity_n of_o discourse_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o tradition_n fundamental_a than_o the_o very_a scripture_n which_o be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v apostolical_a but_o by_o tradition_n whereas_o a_o perpetual_a tradition_n be_v know_v to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o its_o own_o light_n for_o what_o more_o evident_a they_o that_o that_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v deliver_v as_o apostolical_a by_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n consent_v therein_o the_o propertye_n of_o the_o church_n prove_v by_o matth._n 28.20_o §._o 4._o all_o this_o may_v be_v clear_o prove_v to_o omit_v other_o pregnant_a testimony_n by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o last_o of_o s._n matthew_n go_v into_o the_o world_n teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o keep_v all_o that_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n a_o aright_o a_o the_o minister_n pag._n 195._o lin_v 4._o say_v that_o this_o promise_n be_v conditional_a in_o respect_v of_o pastor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n will_v assist_v they_o conditional_o when_o they_o teach_v and_o baptize_v as_o he_o have_v command_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v so_o still_o teach_v he_o do_v not_o promise_n p._n 24._o lin_v 28._o this_o exposition_n be_v false_a first_o because_o our_o saviour_n here_o promise_v his_o presence_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o baptize_v and_o teach_v until_o the_o world_n end_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o form_n of_o speech_n and_o individual_a breath_n so_o that_o the_o promise_n can_v be_v conditional_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o successor_n except_o it_o be_v also_o conditional_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o promise_n be_v absolute_a as_o the_o minister_n grant_v pag._n 94._o lin_v 23._o therefore_o it_o be_v also_o absolute_a in_o respect_n of_o their_o successor_n not_o that_o this_o or_o that_o pastor_n may_v not_o be_v deceive_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o deliver_v by_o joint_a consent_n any_o falsehood_n as_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n second_o if_o the_o promise_n be_v conditional_a than_o the_o sense_n be_v this_o i_o will_v always_o assist_v you_o to_o teach_v &_o christen_v aright_o when_o you_o teach_v &_o christen_v according_a to_o my_o commandment_n as_o the_o minister_n expound_v pag._n 94._o lin_v 22._o but_o this_o sense_n be_v idle_a and_o just_a nothing_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v behold_v i_o will_v assist_v you_o to_o teach_v aright_o when_o you_o teach_v aright_o for_o what_o be_v to_o teach_v christian_a religion_n aright_o but_o to_o
because_o it_o do_v still_o proceed_v and_o must_v needs_o flow_v from_o inward_a reverence_n towards_o god_n for_o how_o can_v one_o worship_n saint_n pure_o and_o only_o as_o they_o be_v the_o friend_n servant_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n but_o out_o of_o the_o instinct_n of_o religion_n unto_o god_n hence_o s._n augustine_n term_n the_o honour_n of_o saint_n religious_a solemnity_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n say_v serm._n the_o martyr_n 69._o that_o we_o admire_v their_o merit_n with_o religious_a charity_n less_o than_o divine_a as_o proceed_v from_o persuasion_n of_o excellency_n though_o super-human_a yet_o infinite_o inferior_a unto_o the_o increate_v &_o immense_a excellency_n of_o god_n yea_o depend_v essential_o thereof_o so_o that_o honour_n that_o be_v give_v to_o they_o depend_v of_o god_n as_o be_v superexcellent_a participant_n of_o his_o perfection_n &_o his_o singular_a friend_n now_o that_o man_n may_v worship_v angel_n and_o saint_n in_o this_o sort_n with_o true_a affection_n of_o spirit_n even_o to_o the_o prostration_n of_o their_o body_n may_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n suppose_v what_o be_v already_o show_v that_o they_o see_v our_o action_n for_o if_o saint_n see_v our_o action_n we_o may_v as_o lawful_o and_o as_o profitable_o bow_v kneel_v and_o prostrate_v our_o body_n unto_o they_o as_o unto_o saint_n live_v on_o earth_n but_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o honour_v live_v saint_n with_o bow_v &_o kneel_v and_o prostration_n of_o body_n as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o many_o example_n 3._o reg._n 18._o abdias_n a_o holy_a man_n valde_fw-la man_n timebat_fw-la dominum_fw-la valde_fw-la adore_v elias_n svam_fw-la elias_n cecidit_fw-la super_fw-la faciem_fw-la svam_fw-la prostrate_v on_o the_o ground_n not_o for_o any_o humane_a excellency_n or_o respect_n but_o because_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n &_o a_o singular_a saint_n of_o god_n the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n terram_fw-la prophet_n 4._o reg_n 2.15_o adoraverunt_fw-la proni_fw-la in_o terram_fw-la see_v sign_n of_o supernatural_a and_o divine_a power_n in_o elizaeus_n come_v unto_o he_o adore_v he_o prostrate_a on_o the_o ground_n the_o sunamite_n woman_n her_o son_n be_v dead_a go_v present_o unto_o elizaeus_n fall_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n sue_v not_o so_o much_o with_o word_n as_o with_o tear_n and_o mournful_a complaint_n for_o the_o resuscitation_n of_o her_o dead_a son_n terram_fw-la son_n 4._o reg._n 4._o cor●uit_fw-la ad_fw-la pedes_fw-la eius_fw-la &_o adoravit_fw-la super_fw-la terram_fw-la we_o read_v also_o that_o holy_a man_n have_v adore_v with_o kneel_v and_o prostration_n of_o their_o body_n holy_a angel_n appear_v unto_o they_o as_o abraham_n terram_fw-la abraham_n gen._n 18.3_o adoravit_fw-la in_o terram_fw-la loth_n terram_fw-la loth_n gen._n 19.19_o 4._o adoravit_fw-la pronus_fw-la in_o terram_fw-la balaam_n 22._o balaam_n num._n 22._o josue_n adorans_fw-la josue_n josue_n 5.15_o cecidit_fw-la pronus_fw-la in_o terram_fw-la adorans_fw-la so_o that_o this_o adoration_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n word_n angel_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 325._o that_o elias_n elizaeus_n and_o the_o angel_n be_v present_a visible_o and_o sensible_o but_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o sensible_o present_a &_o so_o we_o must_v not_o bow_v unto_o saint_n decease_v as_o child_n kneel_v not_o to_o their_o parent_n when_o they_o be_v absent_a answer_n we_o have_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o father_n teach_v with_o full_a consent_n namely_o s._n basill_n the_o virgin_n c._n 16._o every_o angel_n &_o holy_a spirit_n of_o saint_n see_v what_o be_v do_v every_o where_n and_o if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v present_a unto_o we_o and_o we_o a_o spectacle_n unto_o they_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o worship_v they_o as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o be_v sensible_o present_a not_o sense_n but_o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o devotion_n towards_o saint_n may_v we_o worship_v saint_n that_o be_v present_a to_o we_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o flesh_n and_o not_o worship_v they_o that_o be_v present_a according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n with_o more_o than_o human_a &_o natural_a respect_n and_o with_o acknowledgement_n of_o more_o than_o humane_a and_o natural_a perfection_n in_o they_o be_v clear_o deduceable_a from_o holy_a scripture_n neither_o have_v protestant_n reason_n to_o stand_v against_o so_o many_o pregnant_a example_n of_o scripture_n upon_o the_o one_o example_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n of_o the_o angel_n refuse_v to_o be_v adore_v of_o s._n john_n say_v see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o i_o be_o one_o of_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n adore_v god_n special_o this_o place_n be_v explicate_v long_o ago_o by_o the_o father_n as_o not_o against_o the_o custom_n of_o christian_a saint-worship_n for_o either_o the_o angel_n so_o appear_v as_o saint_n john_n take_v he_o to_o be_v god_n &_o will_v have_v adore_v he_o as_o god_n whereof_o the_o adorer_n be_v to_o be_v warn_v as_o s._n augustine_n adorator_fw-la augustine_n s._n august_n q._n 61._o in_o genes_n corrigendus_fw-la erat_fw-la adorator_fw-la expound_v or_o rather_o the_o angel_n for_o bad_a that_o worship_n not_o as_o injurious_a unto_o god_n but_o only_o as_o coumbersome_a to_o himself_o be_v loath_a as_o s._n gregory_n note_v after_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o see_v a_o man_n lie_v prostrate_a unto_o he_o special_o so_o holy_a a_o man_n and_o so_o special_a a_o friend_n of_o jesus_n and_o the_o word_n do_v it_o not_o adore_v god_n import_v no_o more_o which_o i_o declare_v suppose_v that_o one_o praise_v a_o preacher_n to_o his_o face_n for_o a_o excellent_a sermon_n he_o have_v make_v &_o the_o preacher_n out_o of_o modesty_n say_v praise_v not_o i_o i_o be_o a_o unworthy_a instrument_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n praise_v the_o author_n of_o all_o this_o his_o speech_n do_v not_o import_v that_o he_o think_v to_o commend_v a_o preacher_n sermon_n to_o be_v idolatry_n &_o give_v away_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o a_o creature_n but_o only_o that_o modesty_n make_v he_o wish_v that_o man_n will_v not_o praise_v he_o but_o rather_o turn_v all_o the_o praise_n &_o glory_n of_o that_o sermon_n upon_o god_n in_o this_o sort_n the_o angel_n see_v the_o great_a and_o glorious_a friend_n of_o jesus_n prostrate_v at_o his_o fee●e_n request_v he_o to_o rise_v up_o not_o condemn_v that_o adoration_n as_o idolatrous_a but_o refuse_v it_o as_o a_o action_n though_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o offerer_n pious_a &_o godly_a yet_o to_o he_o the_o receiver_n cumbersome_a which_o he_o can_v not_o without_o some_o unwillingnes_n behold_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n he_o see_v prostrate_v before_o he_o rayl_v he_o the_o minister_n in_o this_o place_n be_v large_a in_o bitterness_n against_o we_o because_o he_o know_v not_o what_o to_o say_v or_o how_o to_o frame_v a_o argument_n against_o we_o out_o of_o this_o text_n of_o the_o apocalips_n for_o if_o s._n john_n do_v give_v divine_a and_o religious_a worship_n to_o the_o angel_n due_a to_o god_n only_o the_o example_n be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o we_o say_v saint_n be_v not_o to_o be_v honour_v as_o go_n if_o he_o do_v only_o offer_v honour_n more_o than_o civil_a unto_o the_o angel_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o supernatural_a dignity_n with_o prostration_n of_o body_n than_o the_o same_o be_v not_o unlawful_a for_o the_o minister_n pag._n 336._o lin_v 30._o force_v by_o the_o jesuit_n argument_n do_v acknowledge_v such_o obeisance_n and_o reverend_a comportment_n may_v and_o must_v be_v do_v to_o saint_n and_o angel_n when_o they_o be_v corporal_o &_o visible_o present_a as_o his_o angel_n be_v visible_o and_o corporal_o present_a to_o s._n john_n now_o that_o this_o great_a apostle_n of_o christ_n be_v more_o ignorant_a than_o any_o trivial_a minister_n that_o he_o know_v not_o what_o be_v due_a unto_o angel_n better_o than_o they_o who_o will_v believe_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o offer_v no_o more_o than_o he_o may_v without_o injury_n unto_o god_n else_o be_v warn_v he_o will_v not_o have_v offer_v it_o the_o second_o tyme._n therefore_o it_o be_v honour_n that_o may_v pious_o be_v give_v unto_o a_o angel_n though_o that_o angel_n do_v in_o modesty_n forbid_v he_o to_o show_v the_o respect_n he_o bear_v to_o that_o great_a apostle_n and_o friend_n of_o jesus_n as_o the_o jesuit_n argue_v to_o which_o the_o minister_n reply_v not_o a_o word_n but_o only_o rayl_v this_o be_v evident_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o sacred_a text_n see_v s._n john_n after_o this_o prohibition_n do_v the_o second_o time_n offer_v the_o like_a honour_n to_o the_o same_o angel_n which_o he_o will_v never_o have_v do_v have_v he_o not_o know_v adoration_n of_o angel_n by_o mortal_a man_n to_o be_v pious_a &_o religious_a on_o their_o
can_v not_o have_v more_o fond_o sense_v they_o for_o his_o majesty_n speak_v of_o prayer_n and_o deny_v merit_n unto_o the_o repeat_n of_o prayer_n what_o according_a to_o sense_n can_v he_o mean_v but_o the_o merit_n proper_a of_o prayer_n which_o be_v to_o impetrate_v or_o obtain_v and_o so_o the_o jesuit_n prove_v the_o special_a merit_n of_o impetration_n have_v prove_v what_o his_o majesty_n question_v as_o for_o yourself_o see_v you_o deny_v not_o that_o unto_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n special_a merit_n of_o impetration_n be_v affix_v i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o you_o yield_v the_o very_a doctrine_n his_o majesty_n dislike_v to_o wit_n that_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n in_o a_o fix_a number_n have_v special_a force_n and_o efficacy_n to_o impetrate_v certain_a number_n for_o the_o cause_n before_o mention_v destitute_a of_o the_o example_n of_o saint_n that_o live_v in_o the_o best_a age_n of_o the_o church_n palladius_n in_o his_o history_n cap._n 14._o &_o 25._o set_v down_o some_o example_n of_o saint_n pray_v in_o this_o kind_n yea_o the_o century-writer_n cent._n 4._o col_fw-fr 1329._o and_o osiander_n acknowledge_v the_o example_n of_o saint_n paul_n a_o most_o holy_a monk_n live_v in_o the_o four_o age_n after_o christ_n that_o in_o dies_fw-la singulos_fw-la trecentas_fw-la orationes_fw-la deo_fw-la velut_fw-la tributum_fw-la reddidit_fw-la ac_fw-la ne_fw-la per_fw-la imprudentiam_fw-la in_o numero_fw-la erraret_fw-la trecentis_fw-la lapillis_fw-la in_o sinum_fw-la coniectis_fw-la ad_fw-la singulas_fw-la preces_fw-la singulos_fw-la eiecit_fw-la lapillos_fw-la consumptis_fw-la igitur_fw-la lapillis_fw-la constabat_fw-la sibi_fw-la orationes_fw-la lapillis_fw-la numero_fw-la pares_fw-la abs_fw-la se_fw-la expletas_fw-la esse_fw-la which_o example_n of_o so_o great_a a_o saint_n so_o know_v and_o notorious_a it_o notorious_a the_o minister_n answer_v that_o singular_a example_n be_v no_o rule_n for_o ammonius_n be_v solicit_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n cut_v of_o his_o own_o ear_n &_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o imitable_a herein_o so_o neither_o be_v s._n paul_n example_n in_o say_v prayer_n upon_o bead_n to_o be_v follow_v i_o answer_v some_o thing_n be_v such_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n as_o they_o can_v be_v do_v lawful_o and_o with_o out_o sin_n but_o by_o special_a revelation_n as_o the_o kill_n &_o maym_v himself_o in_o which_o kind_a example_n in_o scripture_n or_o else_o where_o relate_v be_v admirable_a not_o imitable_a but_o when_o the_o thing_n use_v by_o some_o singular_a saint_n be_v not_o against_o any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n but_o a_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v do_v without_o special_a revelation_n the_o same_o be_v imitable_a by_o all_o other_o in_o due_a circumstance_n now_o what_o law_n divine_a or_o human_a forbid_v a_o man_n to_o say_v three_o hundred_o prayer_n a_o day_n one_o hundred_o to_o each_o of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n or_o what_o law_n do_v prohibit_v he_o to_o use_v 300._o little_a stone_n or_o bead_n in_o number_v they_o for_o help_v of_o memory_n or_o why_o may_v we_o not_o help_v our_o memory_n in_o number_v our_o devotion_n by_o calculation_n of_o bead_n if_o s._n paul_n example_n be_v pious_a and_o laudable_a if_o to_o say_v prayer_n in_o a_o certain_a number_n upon_o bead_n be_v intrinsical_o evil_a it_o can_v be_v do_v pious_o by_o the_o singular_a instinct_n of_o god_n spirit_n see_v god_n can_v never_o inspire_v man_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v essential_o evil_a if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o itself_o essential_o evil_a why_o shall_v protestant_n forbid_v man_n to_o use_v such_o help_n of_o our_o devotion_n except_o they_o can_v show_v a_o express_a positive_a divine_a law_n in_o scripture_n against_o it_o and_o never_o censure_v by_o any_o father_n may_v more_o than_o abundant_o suffice_v for_o satisfaction_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o no_o more_o moment_n than_o this_o for_o we_o be_v not_o curious_a in_o this_o point_n nor_o do_v require_v of_o any_o man_n that_o he_o say_v his_o prayer_n in_o a_o certain_a number_n so_o that_o he_o may_v not_o say_v more_o or_o less_o as_o his_o devotion_n serve_v he_o the_o sixth_z point_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n your_o excellent_a majesty_n submit_v your_o judgement_n to_o god_n express_a word_n do_v firm_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o most_o venerable_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o doctrine_n do_v natural_o and_o necessary_o infer_v whatsoever_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o presence_n to_o declare_v this_o and_o together_o answer_v a_o objection_n much_o urge_v by_o some_o protestant_n that_o they_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o be_v not_o bind_v by_o this_o to_o believe_v the_o manner_n that_o not_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n we_o must_v note_v that_o man_n be_v bind_v firm_o to_o believe_v the_o manner_n of_o a_o mystery_n reveal_v when_o the_o same_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n thereof_o so_o that_o reject_v the_o manner_n we_o reject_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n this_o be_v evident_a and_o may_v be_v declare_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v so_o unite_v that_o god_n be_v true_o man_n &_o man_n very_o god_n the_o manner_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v ineffable_a and_o incomprehensible_a yet_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v three_o thing_n concern_v it_o which_o if_o we_o deny_v we_o deny_v the_o mystery_n in_o substance_n howsoever_o we_o may_v retain_v the_o same_o in_o word_n first_o that_o this_o union_n be_v not_o only_o metaphorical_a 4._o metaphorical_a non_fw-la affectualis_fw-la unitas_fw-la sed_fw-la secundum_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la synodus_fw-la 5._o generalis_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la constantinop_n 2._o can._n 4._o by_o affection_n as_o two_o person_n that_o be_v great_a friend_n may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v all_o one_o but_o also_o true_a and_o real_a second_o real_a union_n of_o nature_n be_v 5._o be_v qui_fw-la non_fw-la confitetur_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la substantialiter_fw-la vniri_fw-la carni_fw-la anathema_n sit_v synod_n chal._n act_n 5._o synod_n quinta_fw-la general_n can_v 5._o substantial_a and_o not_o accidental_a so_o that_o thereby_o the_o nature_n be_v not_o only_o accidental_o perfect_v by_o receive_v excellent_a participation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n power_n wisdom_n and_o majesty_n but_o also_o substantial_o the_o very_a fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v corporal_o and_o substantial_o in_o he_o three_o that_o this_o substantial_a union_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n so_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n &_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n become_v one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o eutiches_n teach_v but_o 6._o but_o exit_fw-la duabus_fw-la naturis_fw-la secundum_fw-la substantiam_fw-la vnitis_fw-la unum_fw-la &_o eumdem_fw-la christum_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la confitetur_fw-la condennatus_fw-la est_fw-la council_n lateran_n sub_fw-la martin_n 1._o can._n 6._o hypostatical_a whereby_o god_n and_o man_n become_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n these_o particular_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o incarnation_n though_o high_a subtle_a and_o incomprehensible_a to_o reason_n christian_n may_v and_o must_v believe_v because_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n in_o general_a counsel_n though_o the_o vulgar_a be_v not_o bind_v explicit_o to_o know_v they_o in_o this_o sort_n we_o say_v that_o the_o manner_n how_o our_o saviour_n body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n must_v be_v believe_v &_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v as_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o very_a life_n be_v and_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n reveal_v which_o mystery_n in_o substance_n be_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o priest_n minister_v thereof_o demonstrate_v what_o seem_v bread_n may_v true_o say_v thereof_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o suppose_a as_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n i_o infer_v that_o two_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o mystery_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n &_o can_v be_v call_v in_o question_n without_o danger_n of_o misbelief_n first_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n second_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o transubstantiation_n a_o addition_n prove_v the_o catholic_a real_a presence_n according_a to_o the_o literal_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n against_o ministerial_a metaphor_n figure_n and_o shift_n his_o majesty_n in_o question_v only_a transubstantiation_n seem_v to_o suppose_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o
saviour_n under_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n and_o that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v true_a in_o their_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o the_o answerer_n omit_v to_o prove_v large_o this_o catholic_a doctrine_n now_o the_o minister_n find_v himself_o unable_a upon_o this_o supposition_n of_o his_o majesty_n to_o answer_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n for_o transubstantiation_n yea_o pag._n 397._o affirm_v that_o unless_o transubstantiation_n be_v grant_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n can_v be_v true_a in_o their_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n hence_o he_o deny_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n substantial_o within_o the_o sacred_a sign_n &_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v figurative_o and_o not_o proper_o to_o be_v understand_v he_o grant_v a_o real_a and_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o word_n but_o so_o obscure_o as_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o understand_v his_o meaning_n wherefore_o to_o clear_v this_o matter_n wherein_o minister_n desire_v to_o be_v dark_a that_o man_n may_v not_o see_v the_o gross_a infidelity_n of_o their_o hart_n against_o god_n express_a word_n i_o shall_v show_v 3._o thing_n first_o what_o zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n hold_v in_o this_o point_n second_o how_o the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o zuinglius_fw-la &_o caluin_n be_v against_o god_n word_n three_o that_o their_o reason_n not_o to_o admit_v of_o the_o literal_a truth_n of_o christ_n word_n be_v vain_a and_o idle_a the_o zuinglian_n and_o caluinian_a religion_n about_o the_o sacrament_n §._o 1._o a_o threefold_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v confess_v on_o all_o side_n the_o first_o figurative_a or_o in_o a_o sacramental_a sign_n bread_n signify_v his_o body_n and_o wine_n his_o blood_n the_o second_o imaginative_a or_o by_o the_o pious_a apprehension_n of_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n who_o for_o more_o devotion_n sake_n do_v or_o may_v imagine_v as_o if_o he_o see_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o eucharist_n true_o real_o and_o blee_o present_a under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o three_o effectual_a or_o according_a to_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n of_o grace_n purchase_v by_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o give_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o sacrament_n unto_o the_o soul_n to_o nourish_v the_o ghostly_a life_n thereof_o as_o all_o proceed_v thus_o far_o so_o zwinglians_n will_v proceed_v no_o further_o they_o grant_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n figurative_o in_o a_o sign_n imaginative_o by_o faith_n effectual_o by_o grace_n but_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v present_a according_a to_o their_o corporal_a substance_n or_o further_a then_o in_o the_o outward_a sign_n to_o the_o mouth_n and_o in_o the_o inward_a effect_n to_o the_o soul_n so_o that_o they_o grant_v the_o sacramental_a sign_n to_o be_v bare_a and_o empty_a in_o respect_n of_o contain_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n though_o full_a and_o effectual_a in_o respect_n of_o affoard_v soule-nourishing_a grace_n caluinist_n seem_v in_o their_o word_n to_o maintain_v a_o more_o real_a presence_n for_o though_o they_o maintain_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o place_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n only_o and_o not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o same_o body_n without_o be_v present_a upon_o earth_n be_v give_v we_o on_o earth_n not_o only_o by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o faith_n non_fw-la solùm_fw-la dum_fw-la fide_fw-la amplectimur_fw-la jesum_fw-la christum_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la crucifixum_fw-la &_o à_fw-la mortuis_fw-la excitatum_fw-la not_o only_o in_o the_o inward_a spiritual_a effect_n of_o soule-nourishing_a grace_n purchase_v by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o body_n non_fw-la solùm_fw-la dum_fw-la bonis_fw-la eius_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quae_fw-la nobis_fw-la acquisivit_fw-la corpore_fw-la svo_fw-la efficaciter_fw-la communicamus_fw-la but_o realiter_fw-la real_o &_o true_o dum_fw-la habitat_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la dum_fw-la unum_fw-la fit_a nobiscum_fw-la dum_fw-la eius_fw-la membra_fw-la sumus_fw-la de_fw-la carne_fw-la eius_fw-la dum_fw-la in_o unam_fw-la ut_fw-la ita_fw-la loquar_fw-la cum_fw-la ipso_fw-la substantiam_fw-la coalescimus_fw-la caluin_n in_o cap._n 11.1_o ad_fw-la cor._n hence_o we_o may_v discover_v the_o caluinian_a juggle_n and_o play_v fast_o &_o loose_v about_o this_o mystery_n when_o they_o so_o often_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a but_o spiritual_o for_o the_o word_n spiritual_a may_v be_v use_v in_o this_o mystery_n for_o two_o end_n first_o to_o express_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n present_a &_o to_o signify_v the_o real_a presence_n not_o of_o the_o corporal_a substance_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n but_o only_o of_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n thereof_o to_o wit_n of_o soule-feeding_a grace_n this_o sense_n be_v false_a as_o shall_v be_v prove_v and_o the_o very_a same_o which_o caluin_n do_v condemn_v in_o the_o zwinglian_o as_o execrable_a blasphemy_n opusculo_fw-la de_fw-la coena_fw-la domini_fw-la second_o to_o express_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o presence_n and_o to_o signify_v that_o the_o corporal_a substance_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v present_v true_o yet_o in_o a_o spiritual_a that_o be_v secret_a invisible_a &_o indivisible_a manner_n this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a and_o herein_o not_o differ_v from_o the_o catholic_a in_o like_a manner_n their_o phrase_n of_o presence_n by_o faith_n be_v equivocal_a and_o may_v have_v a_o threefold_a sense_n first_o presence_n by_o faith_n may_v signify_v presence_n by_o pious_a imagination_n of_o faith_n the_o receiver_n conceave_a the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o see_v the_o same_o corporal_o and_o blee_o present_a if_o by_o presence_n by_o faith_n caluinist_n mean_v no_o more_o than_o this_o than_o they_o do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o zwinglian_o nor_o do_v they_o put_v any_o more_o real_a presence_n then_o imaginative_a that_o be_v presence_n of_o thing_n according_a to_o pious_a representation_n and_o apprehension_n though_o not_o real_o &_o in_o truth_n second_o presence_n by_o faith_n may_v signify_v that_o faith_n do_v dispose_v and_o prepare_v the_o soul_n and_o that_o then_o unto_o the_o soul_n prepare_v by_o faith_n our_o saviour_n be_v unite_v real_o and_o true_o not_o according_a to_o the_o corporal_a substance_n of_o his_o body_n but_o only_o according_a to_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n of_o his_o grace_n this_o sense_n be_v also_o zuinglian_n and_o condemn_v by_o caluin_n as_o have_v be_v show_v three_o presence_n by_o faith_n may_v signify_v presence_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o presence_n which_o only_a faith_n can_v find_v out_o feel_v &_o behold_v this_o sense_n be_v true_a and_o catholic_a and_o do_v suppose_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v present_a absolute_o and_o independent_o of_o faith_n for_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n afore_o hand_n present_a faith_n shall_v not_o be_v true_a that_o judge_v his_o body_n to_o be_v present_a whether_o our_o minister_n be_v zuinglian_n or_o caluinist_n in_o this_o point_n god_n only_o know_v he_o speak_v obscure_o of_o purpose_n he_o never_o say_v as_o caluin_n do_v li._n 4._o institut_fw-la c._n 17._o n._n 7._o that_o by_o substantial_a communication_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o supper_n deliver_v unto_o the_o faith_n full_a yet_o he_o say_v and_o often_o repeat_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o real_o &_o effectual_o communicate_v these_o word_n savour_v more_o of_o the_o caluinian_a then_o of_o the_o zuinglian_n phrase_n notwithstanding_o his_o add_v effectual_o after_o true_o and_o real_o may_v draw_v the_o speech_n to_o be_v zuinglian_n in_o sense_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v true_o real_o effectual_o that_o be_v real_o accord_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o reality_n of_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n not_o real_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o reality_n of_o the_o corporal_a substance_n the_o zuinglian_n and_o caluinian_a presence_n confute_v §._o 2._o the_o zuinglian_n doctrine_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_v only_o in_o a_o effectual_a sign_n of_o grace_n not_o in_o substance_n be_v against_o the_o plain_a &_o express_v word_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o he_o do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v the_o sign_n or_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n nor_o this_o be_v the_o benefit_n or_o effect_v of_o my_o body_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v his_o body_n in_o substance_n and_o essence_n if_o the_o substantial_a verb_n est_fw-la do_v signify_v substance_n and_o essence_n hence_o luther_n epist._n ad_fw-la argent_fw-fr say_v that_o the_o word_n be_v nimis_fw-la clara_fw-la toto_fw-la clear_a and_o much_o more_o clear_a than_o he_o can_v have_v wish_v caluin_n also_o in_o cap._n
mysterijs_fw-la initiantur_fw-la cap._n ●_o moses_n his_o word_n change_v the_o water_n of_o egypt_n into_o blood_n &_o again_o turn_v they_o from_o blood_n into_o water_n if_o so_o great_a be_v the_o benediction_n of_o man_n what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o divine_a consecration_n where_o the_o very_a word_n of_o our_o saviour_n work_v the_o word_n of_o elias_n have_v power_n to_o bring_v down_o fire_n from_o heaven_n &_o shall_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n have_v force_n to_o change_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o element_n again_o 4._o again_o ambros._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la s●cram_fw-la cap._n 4._o thou_o see_v how_o work_n &_o efficacious_a be_v the_o word_n of_o christ._n if_o therefore_o such_o virtue_n be_v in_o his_o word_n that_o thereby_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o receive_v be_v how_o much_o more_o have_v it_o power_n that_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v still_o remain_v in_o the_o general_a latitude_n of_o be_v &_o according_a to_o the_o sensible_a accident_n and_o be_v convert_v into_o another_o substance_n viii_o four_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o transmutation_n teach_v by_o the_o father_n be_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n bind_v we_o to_o abnegate_n our_o sense_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v what_o we_o seem_v to_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n ix_o theophilact_n matth._n theophilact_n theophilact_n c._n 4._o 26._o matth._n bread_n be_v transelemented_a or_o transform_v by_o a_o ineffable_a operation_n although_o to_o we_o it_o seem_v bread_n because_o we_o be_v weak_a and_o have_v horror_n to_o eat_v raw_a flesh_n especial_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n for_o this_o reason_n bread_n appear_v but_o in_o essence_n and_o substance_n it_o be_v not_o bread_n saint_n cyrill_n 4._o cyrill_n cyrill_n hieros_n catech._n mystagog_o 4._o come_v not_o therefore_o as_o unto_o simple_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o affirmation_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o although_o sense_n suggest_v the_o contrary_a yet_o let_v faith_n confirm_v thou_o judge_v not_o of_o the_o thing_n by_o taste_n but_o indubitable_o &_o with_o full_a faith_n believe_v that_o thou_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o again_o know_v this_o &_o with_o full_a certitude_n believe_v that_o the_o bread_n see_v be_v not_o bread_n though_o it_o so_o seem_v to_o the_o taste_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o that_o wine_n see_v be_v not_o wine_n though_o taste_n judge_v it_o to_o be_v wine_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n x._o final_o that_o the_o father_n hold_v transubstantiation_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o continuancy_n which_o they_o teach_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n last_o as_o appeareth_z by_o their_o reserve_n of_o the_o same_o for_o reservation_n to_o have_v be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n protestant_n grant_n that_o 39_o that_o habent_fw-la veteris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la exemplum_fw-la fateor_fw-la caluin_n instit._fw-la l._n 9_o c._n 17._o sect_n 39_o the_o sacrament_n be_v of_o some_o reserve_v in_o the_o elder_a day_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o say_v 77._o say_v fulke_o against_o heskin_n saunders_n p._n 77._o m._n fulke_o so_o great_a a_o question_n as_o whether_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v reserve_v and_o chemnitius_n 102._o chemnitius_n chemnit_fw-la in_o exam_n con._n trid._n p._n 2._o p._n 102._o grant_v that_o in_o this_o point_n on_o our_o side_n stand_v antiquitas_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la latè_fw-la patentis_fw-la &_o diu_fw-la propagatae_fw-la and_o whereas_o he_o add_v haec_fw-la tamen_fw-la veritati_fw-la praescribere_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la he_o accuse_v the_o primitive_a church_n &_o oppose_v no_o less_o against_o they_o than_o us._n and_o i_o be_o sure_a your_o majesty_n know_v that_o the_o primitive_a father_n do_v use_v to_o send_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v lawful_o absent_a from_o church_n as_o do_v witness_n s._n justine_n fine_a justine_n justin._n apol._n 2._o fine_a &_o unto_o the_o sick_a as_o innocent_n as_o dionys._n alexand_v ep_v ad_fw-la fab._n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 6._o cap._n 36._o chrysost._n ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la innocent_n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n write_v of_o serapion_n that_o christian_n carry_v the_o same_o to_o their_o private_a house_n to_o take_v in_o the_o morning_n before_o other_o meat_n as_o testify_v tertullian_n gorgon_n tertullian_n tertul._n l._n 2._o ad_fw-la vxorem_fw-la gregor_n nazian_n orat_fw-la de_fw-fr gorgon_n that_o many_o time_n they_o do_v wear_v the_o same_o about_o they_o for_o protection_n as_o satyri_fw-la as_o ambros._n orat_fw-la in_o obit●●_n fratris_fw-la satyri_fw-la satyrus_n brother_n to_o saint_n ambrose_n go_v to_o sea_n carry_v it_o in_o a_o stole_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o he_o be_v save_v in_o shipwreck_n that_o martyr_n have_v the_o same_o frequent_o for_o their_o viaticum_fw-la as_o 2._o as_o simeon_n metaphrast_n aquavitae_fw-la s._n stephani_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o martyris_fw-la cap._n 17._o vsuard_n in_o martyrolog_n guitmund_n de_fw-fr corp_n &_o sanguine_a l._n 2._o tharsilius_fw-la a_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n who_o be_v take_v with_o the_o sacrament_n about_o he_o permit_v himself_o rather_o to_o be_v bruise_v with_o stone_n to_o death_n then_o disclose_v it_o unto_o the_o persecutor_n who_o when_o they_o have_v crown_v thy_o search_a curious_o for_o the_o sacrament_n in_o his_o clothes_n and_o about_o his_o dead_a body_n find_v nothing_o god_n by_o miracle_n keep_v the_o same_o out_o of_o their_o impious_a hand_n saint_n lapsis_fw-la saint_n cyprian_a serm_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la cyprian_n record_v diverse_a miracle_n do_v in_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o our_o saviour_n permanent_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n namely_o of_o a_o woman_n unworthy_o approach_v to_o the_o chest_n where_o the_o same_o be_v keep_v that_o be_v fright_v back_o with_o fire_n that_o thence_o flash_v out_o tanta_fw-la est_fw-la domini_fw-la potentia_fw-la say_v saint_n cyprian_n tanta_fw-la majestas_fw-la and_o so_o full_o be_v they_o persuade_v in_o this_o opinion_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v permanent_o in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o cyrill_n calosyr_n cyrill_n cyrill_n alex._n ep_v ad_fw-la calosyr_n dare_v say_v insaniunt_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la à_fw-la sanctificatione_n cessare_fw-la siquae_fw-la reliquiae_fw-la remanserunt_fw-la eius_fw-la in_o sequentem_fw-la diem_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la mutabitur_fw-la sacrosanctum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la virtus_fw-la benedictionis_fw-la &_o vivificativa_fw-la gratia_fw-la iugis_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la est_fw-la they_o be_v mad_a with_o heretical_a folly_n who_o say_v that_o the_o bless_a sanctification_n of_o the_o sacrament_n cease_v if_o the_o same_o be_v reserve_v until_o the_o next_o day_n for_o thereby_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o change_v but_o the_o grace_n of_o benediction_n &_o vivification_n be_v perpetual_a in_o it_o now_o what_o reason_n can_v the_o father_n have_v thus_o constant_o to_o defend_v this_o continuation_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o they_o believe_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n remain_v demonstrable_a by_o the_o form_n &_o accidence_n thereof_o so_o long_o as_o they_o remain_v entire_a and_o be_v not_o change_v into_o the_o accidence_n of_o some_o other_o substance_n xi_o a_o refutation_n of_o the_o minister_n shift_n to_o elude_v the_o former_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n according_a to_o the_o reference_n of_o the_o precedent_a number_n 1_n no_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o christian_a antiquity_n can_v be_v so_o clear_a &_o evident_a which_o heretical_a obstinacy_n will_v not_o wrest_v against_o the_o truth_n yea_o rack_n till_o they_o rend_v they_o in_o piece_n by_o violent_a interpretation_n as_o say_v s._n ambrose_n ep._n 17._o in_o which_o kind_n be_v the_o minister_n reply_v unto_o these_o express_a &_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n for_o transubstantiation_n as_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o confutation_n which_o here_o ensue_v ii_o transelement_a the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transelementation_n say_v the_o minister_n pag._n 421._o prove_v not_o transubstantiation_n for_o in_o transubstantiation_n the_o matter_n be_v destroy_v &_o the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n remain_v &_o in_o transelementation_n the_o matter_n remain_v &_o the_o essential_a &_o accidental_a form_n be_v alter_v answer_n the_o falsehood_n and_o inanity_n of_o this_o shift_n be_v convince_v by_o these_o four_o argument_n which_o show_v transelementation_n to_o import_v the_o same_o as_o transubstantiation_n the_o first_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n element_n &_o transelementation_n for_o transelementation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n signifyes_n that_o there_o be_v a_o change_n betwixt_o they_o according_a to_o their_o element_n element_n import_v the_o primordiall_a simples_n the_o original_a principle_n the_o substantial_a part_n of_o which_o
the_o choice_n of_o printer_n that_o protestant_n enjoy_v of_o thou_o gentle_a reader_n in_o requital_n of_o my_o labour_n i_o require_v no_o more_o then_o that_o to_o the_o peruse_n of_o they_o thou_o will_v bring_v a_o unpartial_a mind_n free_a from_o prejudicate_a opinion_n raise_v by_o pulpit-inuective_n and_o popular_a report_n free_a i_o say_v from_o human_a regard_n affect_v unto_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n resolve_v when_o the_o same_o appear_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o embrace_n thereof_o through_o the_o fear_n of_o temporal_a danger_n if_o thy_o mind_n be_v thus_o indifferent_o &_o pious_o dispose_v i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o after_o attentive_a read_n thou_o will_v give_v the_o same_o censure_n of_o the_o conference_n and_o disputation_n betwixt_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n which_o marcellinus_n pronounce_v of_o the_o conference_n betwixt_o the_o catholic_n and_o donatist_n augustin_n in_o breviculo_fw-la collat._n omnium_fw-la argumentorun_n manifestatione_n à_fw-la catholicis_fw-la aduersarios_fw-la confutato_n esse_fw-la that_o the_o catholic_n be_v prove_v superior_a unto_o their_o adversary_n by_o the_o manifest_a truth_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o argument_n a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n and_o principal_a matter_n handle_v aswell_o in_o the_o answer_n as_o in_o the_o rejoinder_n the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n a_o introduction_n to_o the_o censure_n show_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o picture_n and_o pageant_n display_v in_o the_o first_o two_o page_n of_o the_o minister_n book_n content_n of_o the_o censure_n sect._n i._o doctor_n white_a his_o ignorance_n of_o latin_a and_o grammar_n or_o else_o wilful_a go_v against_o the_o know_a truth_n pag._n 9_o §_o 1._o s._n epiphanius_n word_n about_o image_n interpret_v against_o grammar_n pag._n 10.11_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o his_o grammatical_a ignorance_n about_o the_o word_n accipite_fw-la manducate_a bibite_fw-la pag._n 12.13_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o his_o gross_a misprision_n in_o translate_n of_o latin_n pag._n 15.16_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o about_o s._n cyprian_n teach_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o word_n species_n pag._n 19.20_o etc._n etc._n §_o 5._o his_o abuse_v the_o jesuit_n word_n against_o english_a construction_n to_o a_o impious_a sense_n pag._n 23.24_o etc._n etc._n sect._n ii_o d._n white_a his_o gross_a and_o incredible_a ignorance_n in_o logic_n pag._n 30._o §_o 1._o his_o fond_a accusation_n of_o the_o jesuit_n as_o peccant_a against_o the_o form_n of_o syllogism_n pag._n 31._o §_o 2._o four_o argument_n by_o he_o bring_v all_o foolish_a &_o peccant_a in_o form_n pag_n 37.38_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o his_o ridiculous_a argument_n to_o prove_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n for_o layman_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n pag._n 43.44_o etc._n etc._n sect._n iii_o d._n white_a his_o gross_a ignorance_n of_o theology_n pag._n 51._o §·_o 1._o his_o teach_n that_o unto_o minister_n religious_a adoration_n be_v du●_n pag._n 52.53_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o that_o that_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o have_v wicked_a pastor_n pag._n ●6_n 57_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o he_o profess_v infidelity_n about_o the_o bless_a sacracrament_n pag._n 64.65_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o his_o gross_a ignorance_n further_o discover_v about_o the_o same_o pag._n 68_o 69·_fw-la etc._n etc._n §_o 5._o his_o extreme_a ignorance_n about_o satisfaction_n pag._n 72.73_o etc._n etc._n §_o 6._o his_o ignorance_n about_o the_o holy_a cross_n &_o water_n of_o jordan_n pag._n 77.78_o etc._n etc._n §_o 7._o his_o ignorance_n about_o tradition_n pag_n 83.84_o etc._n etc._n sect._n four_o d._n white_a his_o ignorance_n in_o holy_a scripture_n pag._n 86._o §_o 1._o he_o deny_v the_o text_n &_o context_n of_o scripture_n pag._n 87.88_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o he_o be_v force_v to_o go_v against_o christ_n express_a word_n pag._n 89.90_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o he_o be_v force_v to_o deny_v the_o creed_n pag._n 92.93_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o in_o answer_v scripture_n he_o contradict_v himself_o &_o grant_v the_o jesuit_n the_o question_n pag._n 95.96_o etc._n etc._n §_o 5._o in_o lieu_n of_o answer_v he_o confirm_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n pag._n 98.99_o etc._n etc._n §_o 6._o he_o send_v the_o jesuite_n to_o god_n for_o a_o answer_n pag._n 101.102_o etc._n etc._n §_o 7._o his_o innumerable_a gross_a impertinency_n in_o cypher_v &_o score_n of_o scripture_n pag._n 104.105_o etc._n etc._n §_o 8._o he_o cit_v scripture_n that_o make_v against_o he_o pag._n 108.109_o etc._n etc._n §_o 9_o scripture_n abuse_v &_o falsify_v pag._n 112.113_o etc._n etc._n the_o text_n of_o matth._n 24.24_o that_o even_o the_o elect_n shall_v be_v deceive_v be_v it_o possible_a by_o he_o most_o gross_o apply_v pag._n 116._o etc._n etc._n the_o text_n act._n 17.11_o about_o the_o beroean_n abuse_v pag._n 118.119_o etc._n etc._n the_o text_n 1._o joan._n 18._o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n etc._n etc._n falsify_v pag._n 120.121_o etc._n etc._n sect._n v._o his_o ignorance_n fraud_n &_o falsehood_n in_o allege_v father_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o author_n pag._n 125._o §_o 1._o seven_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n about_o scripture_n &_o tradition_n falsify_v 127.128_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o seven_o testimony_n of_o other_o father_n falsify_v pag._n 134.135_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o foul_a calumniation_n &_o falsification_n of_o hosius_n bellarmine_n petrus_n à_fw-fr soto_n &_o bosius_n p._n 143.144_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o other_o father_n impudent_o falsify_v as_o if_o they_o do_v aver_v what_o they_o do_v most_o constant_o maintain_v &_o prove_v pag._n 150.151_o etc._n etc._n §_o 5._o gross_a imputation_n with_o manifest_a falsehood_n impute_v unto_o cardinal_n baronius_n pag._n 153.154_o etc._n etc._n content_n of_o the_o answer_n and_o rejoinder_n the_o preface_n to_o king_n james._n pag._n 3._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n p._n 3._o a_o short_a treatise_n concern_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o more_o full_a clear_n of_o the_o ensue_a controversy_n about_o tradition_n scripture_n &_o the_o church_n pag._n 15._o §_o 1._o the_o protestant_a resolution_n of_o faith_n declare_v pag._n 15.16_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o the_o former_a resolution_n confute_v by_o six_o argument_n pag._n 16.17.18_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o concern_v the_o light_n of_o scripture_n pag._n 21.22_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n about_o the_o catholic_a resolution_n of_o faith_n pag._n 30._o §_o 1._o the_o first_o principle_n prove_v pag._n 30.31_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o the_o seeond_a principle_n demonstrate_v pag._n 32.33_o etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o the_o three_o principle_n prove_v pag._n 36.37_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o how_o the_o church_n tradition_n be_v prove_v infallible_a independent_o of_o scripture_n pag._n 38.39_o etc._n etc._n §_o 5._o the_o difference_n between_o prophetical_a and_o ordinary_a divine_a illumination_n by_o which_o protestant_n cavil_n be_v answer_v pag._n 41.42_o etc._n etc._n §_o 6._o the_o four_o principle_n prove_v pag._n 44.45_o etc._n etc._n the_o first_o ground_n §_o 1._o that_o a_o christian_a resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o perpetual_a tradition_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n pag._n 50.51_o etc._n etc._n §_o 2._o concern_v the_o sufficiency_n and_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n pag._n 61.62_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o how_o catholic_n grant_v the_o same_o sufficiency_n to_o be_v in_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n do_v and_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n about_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o tradition_n pag._n 63.64_o etc._n etc._n the_o second_o ground_n §_o 3._o that_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n always_o in_o the_o world_n to_o who_o tradition_n man_n be_v to_o cleave_v that_o this_o church_n be_v one_o universal_a apostolical_a holy_a pag._n 70.71_o etc._n etc._n §_o 4._o the_o property_n of_o the_o church_n prove_v by_o matth._n 28.20_o pag._n 82.83_o etc._n etc._n §_o 5._o that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n from_o &_o by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n pag._n 85.86_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o before_o luther_n pag._n 85.86_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o that_o the_o grecian_n be_v not_o protestant_n in_o essence_n pag._n 87._o ¶_o that_o the_o waldense_n be_v not_o protestant_n for_o essence_n and_o kind_n pag._n 88_o ¶_o that_o protestant_n not_o be_v able_a to_o clear_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n by_o tradition_n do_v vain_o appeal_v unto_o scripture_n for_o their_o doctrine_n pag._n 89.90_o etc._n etc._n §_o 6._o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o matter_n show_v that_o protestant_n err_v fundamental_o pag._n 108.109_o etc._n etc._n the_o nine_o point_n i._o point_n about_o worship_n of_o image_n pag._n 123._o §_o 1._o worship_n of_o image_n consequent_a out_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o nature_n and_o christianity_n pag._n 125.126_o etc._n etc._n §_o
that_o religious_a adoration_n be_v due_a to_o minister_n see_v the_o censure_n sect._n 3_o §._o 1._o adore_v self_n and_o with_o other_o glorious_a giew-gawes_a in_o honour_n of_o your_o book_n and_o religion_n touch_v which_o i_o will_v say_v a_o word_n that_o hereby_o the_o reader_n may_v give_v a_o guess_n at_o the_o truth_n learning_n discretion_n modesty_n you_o show_v in_o your_o book_n a_o good_a house_n as_o say_v virg._n say_v bona_fw-la domus_fw-la ex_fw-la limine_fw-la debet_fw-la agnosci_fw-la ambros_n de_fw-fr institut_fw-la virg._n s._n ambrose_n be_v know_v by_o the_o frontispiece_n thereof_o the_o roman_a orator_n rebuke_v some_o ancient_a philosopher_n who_o make_v show_v to_o contemn_v human_a glory_n whereof_o in_o their_o heart_n they_o be_v insatiable_o greedy_a convince_a their_o hypocrisy_n by_o this_o argument_n archia_fw-la argument_n cicero_n pro_fw-la archia_fw-la libris_fw-la quos_fw-la de_fw-la contemnenda_fw-la gloria_fw-la scribunt_fw-la sva_fw-la nomina_fw-la inscribunt_fw-la their_o book_n inscribe_v of_o the_o contempt_n of_o glory_n be_v superscribe_v with_o their_o name_n that_o they_o may_v be_v glorious_a what_o then_o may_v we_o think_v of_o you_o who_o in_o the_o book_n wherein_o you_o reject_v the_o image_n of_o your_o lord_n and_o saviour_n as_o 21●_n as_o reply_v pag._n 21●_n no_o good_a nor_o effectual_a mean_n to_o breed_v godly_a memory_n &_o heavenly_a desire_n in_o this_o very_a book_n i_o say_v even_o in_o the_o first_o page_n thereof_o next_o after_o the_o blank_n you_o have_v place_v your_o own_o picture_n in_o as_o lively_a lovely_a &_o venerable_a manner_n as_o you_o can_v devise_v that_o people_n gaze_v thereon_o may_v by_o the_o aspect_n thereof_o be_v move_v with_o love_n with_o veneration_n with_o devotion_n towards_o you_o this_o show_v that_o through_o a_o vain_a glorious_a humour_n you_o feel_v that_o truth_n in_o your_o hart_n which_o through_o want_n of_o religious_a devotion_n you_o 214._o you_o reply_v pag._n 214._o deny_v in_o word_n to_o wit_n that_o honour_n do_v to_o the_o image_n be_v by_o the_o law_n and_o institution_n of_o nature_n refer_v and_o to_o be_v take_v as_o do_v to_o the_o person_n and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o in_o a_o minister_n why_o shall_v not_o holy_a image_n be_v good_a mean_n of_o pious_a devotion_n and_o godly_a memory_n towards_o christ_n jesus_n why_o shall_v not_o man_n be_v move_v to_o religious_a devotion_n by_o the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n crucify_v aswell_o as_o by_o you_o here_o paint_a with_o all_o the_o ornament_n of_o a_o ministerial_a deane_n by_o the_o picture_n i_o say_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n suffer_v for_o man_n not_o sit_v in_o a_o curious_a wrought_v chair_n as_o you_o do_v but_o hang_v on_o a_o painful_a and_o ignominious_a cross_n not_o with_o a_o velvet_n cap_n on_o his_o head_n as_o you_o wear_v to_o keep_v in_o your_o wit_n but_o with_o a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n which_o pierce_v into_o his_o sacred_a temple_n let_v out_o his_o blood_n not_o clothe_v in_o damask_n as_o you_o be_v but_o in_o the_o purple_a of_o his_o precious_a blood_n not_o set_v forth_o with_o fine_a ruffeb●nds_n and_o cuff_n wherewith_o your_o wrist_n and_o neck_n be_v trim_v to_o make_v your_o face_n look_v smug_a and_o gracious_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o flesh_n but_o full_o of_o rough_a blow_n ●●ide_v sore_n &_o bleed_a wound_n which_o represent_v the_o 44._o the_o credentibus_fw-la ubique_fw-la sponsus_fw-la pulcher_fw-la occurrit_fw-la pulcher_fw-la ad_fw-la dexteram_fw-la patris_fw-la pulcher_fw-la in_o manibus_fw-la matris_fw-la pulcher_fw-la in_o caelum_fw-la pulcher_fw-la in_o ligno_fw-la pulcher_fw-la in_o miraculis_fw-la pulcher_fw-la in_o flagellis_fw-la augustin_n in_o psal._n 44._o beauty_n of_o his_o charity_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o herein_o you_o be_v pardonable_a in_o that_o this_o irreligious_a vanity_n come_v to_o you_o by_o bohem._n by_o the_o like_a be_v do_v by_o acacius_n that_o enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a sea_n as_o write_v suidas_n and_o by_o the_o bohemian_a protestant-rebell_n zisea_n who_o have_v destroy_v all_o holy_a image_n cause_v his_o own_o to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o every_o place_n aeneas_n silvius_n histor._n bohem._n kind_n you_o imitate_v herein_o the_o grand_a propagatour_n of_o your_o ministerial_a stock_n john_n caluin_n he_o have_v reject_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n jesus_n &_o his_o saint_n not_o allow_v they_o so_o much_o as_o to_o be_v fit_a book_n to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a 1._o ignorant_a caluin_n instit._n l._n 1._o c._n ●●_o §._o 1._o check_v saint_n gregory_n for_o so_o affirm_v as_o not_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nevertheless_o he_o do_v dote_v on_o his_o own_o image_n and_o be_v most_o greedy_a of_o the_o token_n of_o affection_n show_v he_o by_o the_o same_o hence_o when_o sundry_a person_n special_o the_o damsel_n of_o geneva_n ●●_o geneva_n la_fw-fr via_fw-la de_fw-fr caluin_n c._n ●●_o to_o show_v their_o devote_a love_n to_o this_o their_o arch-prophet_n wear_v his_o image_n about_o their_o neck_n direct_o upon_o their_o heart_n he_o take_v therein_o singular_a content_a so_o far_o as_o unto_o some_o zealous_a minister_n and_o godly_a brethren_n that_o with_o show_n of_o dislike_n warn_v he_o thereof_o he_o make_v this_o charitable_a answer_n the_o thing_n shall_v be_v continue_v in_o despite_n of_o you_o if_o you_o like_v it_o not_o turn_v away_o your_o eye_n otherwise_o let_v your_o heart_n break_v with_o enuy._n whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o minister_n understand_v &_o feel_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n that_o image_n be_v fit_a instrument_n to_o kindle_v and_o conserve_v affection_n towards_o person_n venerable_o represent_v give_v we_o just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o their_o condemn_v the_o use_n of_o christ_n image_n by_o way_n of_o religious_a devotion_n towards_o he_o proceed_v not_o in_o truth_n as_o be_v pretend_v from_o their_o zeal_n against_o idolatrous_a worship_n but_o because_o themselves_o alone_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o image_n will_v take_v possession_n of_o man_n heart_n what_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o so_o many_o fond_a image_n be_v daily_o invent_v and_o vent_v in_o england_n in_o lie_v form_n no_o less_o honourable_a to_o your_o religion_n then_o disgraceful_a to_o the_o roman_a but_o that_o you_o know_v that_o image_n be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o weapon_n to_o expugne_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o simple_a either_o with_o love_n &_o affection_n or_o by_o aversion_n and_o contempt_n a_o candle_n signify_v the_o light_n of_o your_o gospel_n be_v paint_v with_o a_o general_a assembly_n of_o your_o gospeler_n with_o great_a show_n of_o piety_n about_o it_o luther_n caluin_n zuinglius_fw-la husse_n wickliff_n melancthon_n knox_n bullinger_n beza_n zanchy_n &_o some_o other_o a_o devil_n a_o pope_n a_o cardinal_n a_o friar_n in_o vggly_a shape_n puff_v and_o blow_v &_o cast_v holy_a water_n in_o vain_a to_o put_v it_o out_o a_o fabulous_a vanity_n to_o delude_v sot_n see_v every_o man_n that_o be_v not_o a_o fool_n may_v most_o easy_o know_v even_o by_o luther_n confession_n 228._o confession_n luther_n tom._n 7._o wittenberg_n anno_fw-la 15●8_n lib._n de_fw-fr missaprivata_n &_o vnctione_n sacerdotum_fw-la fol._n 228._o that_o his_o light_n come_v not_o from_o heaven_n but_o from_o hell_n kindle_v by_o conference_n with_o the_o devil_n who_o 41.18_o who_o halitus_fw-la eius_fw-la prunas_fw-la ardere_fw-la facit_fw-la job_n 41.18_o breath_n make_v your_o dead_a coal_n to_o burn_v so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o go_v about_o to_o quench_v the_o fire_n of_o your_o gospel_n as_o for_o the_o general_a meeting_n of_o your_o gospeler_n sit_v together_o in_o such_o a_o concordious_a manner_n they_o that_o have_v read_v their_o write_n know_v that_o shall_v they_o meet_v in_o truth_n as_o they_o be_v make_v in_o your_o fancy_n if_o their_o tongue_n be_v of_o the_o same_o temper_n as_o their_o pen_n they_o will_v not_o sit_v so_o demure_o and_o peaceable_o as_o they_o be_v paint_v by_o you_o but_o fall_v together_o by_o the_o ear_n and_o to_o cuff_n the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o that_o as_o say_v your_o perscribenda_fw-la your_o bilson_n de_fw-fr perpetua_fw-la gubernat_fw-la eccles._n c._n 16._o si_fw-mi linguae_fw-la eorum_fw-la similiter_fw-la se_fw-la habent_fw-la ac_fw-la calami_fw-la pluribus_fw-la cer●è_fw-la opus_fw-la erit_fw-la pacis_fw-la custodibus_fw-la ad_fw-la pugnas_fw-la praeveniendas_fw-la quàm_fw-la notarijs_fw-la ad_fw-la decreta_fw-la eorum_fw-la perscribenda_fw-la bishop_n bilson_n without_o doubt_n there_o will_v be_v need_n of_o more_o justice_n of_o peace_n to_o part_v the_o fray_n ●●en_o of_o notarye_n to_o write_v the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n hence_o the_o painter_n not_o without_o mystery_n and_o with_o great_a foresight_n have_v make_v the_o minister_n knox_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o imagine_a assembly_n to_o signify_v that_o if_o ever_o a_o general_n council_n of_o your_o reformer_n hap_v
take_v with_o ague_n and_o with_o death_n yea_o some_o with_o minister_n wife_n very_o shall_v deaneryes_a be_v give_v in_o england_n according_a to_o learning_n this_o your_o discourse_n about_o take_v will_v deserve_v this_o verdict_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o learned_a ●en_n his_o deane-ry_a let_v another_o man_n take_v the_o three_o example_n §._o 3._o what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o your_o gross_a misprision_n in_o translate_n which_o show_v your_o ignorance_n in_o latin_a or_o else_o your_o fraudulency_n &_o wilful_a impugnation_n of_o know_a truth_n to_o prove_v that_o general_n counsel_n may_v err_v in_o ●ayth_n you_o 155._o you_o reply_v pag._n 155._o cite_v this_o say_n of_o 6._o of_o cusan_a lib._n 2._o concord_n c._n 6._o cusanus_fw-la notandum_fw-la est_fw-la experimento_fw-la rerum_fw-la universale_fw-la concilium_fw-la plenarium_fw-la posse_fw-la deficere_fw-la the_o true_a english_a whereof_o be_v it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o a_o plenary_a universal_a council_n may_v f●ile_v in_o the_o experiment_n of_o thing_n or_o ibid._n or_o deficere_fw-la potest_fw-la in_o experiendo_fw-la ibid._n matter_n of_o fact_n you_o translate_v experience_n of_o thing_n do_v manifest_a that_o a_o plenary_a universal_a council_n may_v be_v deficient_a what_o grossness_n be_v this_o do_v notandum_fw-la signify_v manifest_a what_o more_o manifest_a though_o not_o note_v by_o you_o then_o that_o cusanus_fw-la ibid._n cusanus_fw-la docet_fw-la augustinus_n quomodo_fw-la plenaria_fw-la concilia_fw-la per_fw-la subsequentia_fw-la concilia_fw-la corrigantur_fw-la ob_fw-la facti_fw-la errorem_fw-la ibid._n by_o experiment_n of_o thing_n mean_n matter_n of_o fact_n for_o his_o drift_n be_v to_o show_v that_o former_a counsel_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o the_o late_a ob_n facti_fw-la errorem_fw-la in_o respect_n of_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n otherwise_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o plenary_a universal_a counsel_n be_v infallible_a cusanus_fw-la do_v 4._o do_v si_fw-mi concordanti_fw-la sententia_fw-la aliquid_fw-la definitum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la censetur_fw-la à_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la inspiratum_fw-la &_o per_fw-la christum_fw-la in_o medio_fw-la congregatorum_fw-la in_o eius_fw-la nomine_fw-la praesidentem_fw-la infallibiliter_fw-la iudicatum_fw-la ibid._n c._n 4._o hold_v and_o prove_v in_o that_o very_a book_n to_o prove_v that_o all_o heretic_n pretend_v not_o scripture_n 42._o scripture_n orthodox_n pag._n 41._o &_o 42._o you_o cite_v s._n augustine_n as_o say_v all_o heretic_n read_v not_o scripture_n ●_o scripture_n august_n lib._n 7._o in_o gen._n c._n ●_o who_o word_n in_o latin_a be_v neque_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la scripturas_fw-la catholicas_n legunt_fw-la nec_fw-la ob_fw-la aliud_fw-la haeretici_fw-la sunt_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la eas_fw-la non_fw-la rectè_fw-la intelligentes_fw-la svas_fw-la falsas_fw-la opiniones_fw-la contra_fw-la earum_fw-la veritatem_fw-la pertinacit●●_n asserunt_fw-la which_o place_n translate_v prove_v the_o contrary_a for_o it_o be_v this_o all_o heretic_n read_v scripture_n nor_o be_v they_o heretic_n for_o any_o other_o cause_n but_o that_o understanding_n th●_n scripture_n amiss_o they_o pertinacious_o maintain_v their_o erroneous_a opinion_n against_o their_o truth_n these_o word_n neque_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la scripturas_fw-la catholicas_n legunt_fw-la you_o translate_v all_o heretic_n do_v not_o read_v scripture_n against_o grammar_n against_o sense_n against_o grammar_n by_o the_o rule_n whereof_o two_o negation_n affirm_v so_o that_o non_fw-la omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la non_fw-la legunt_fw-la be_v the_o same_o as_o omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la legunt_fw-la all_o heretic_n read_v the_o scripture_n against_o sense_n for_o in_o this_o your_o translation_n all_o heretic_n do_v not_o read_v scripture_n nor_o be_v they_o heretic_n for_o any_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o they_o understand_v they_o no●_n aright_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n destroy_v the_o 〈◊〉_d for_o if_o all_o heretic_n read_v not_o scripture_n as_o you_o 〈◊〉_d s._n augustine_n say_v in_o the_o first_o part_n than_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o heresy_n be_v not_o only_o pertinacious_a misprision_n 〈◊〉_d the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o he_o affirm_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d no_o doubt_n if_o heretic_n read_v not_o the_o sacred_a text_n 〈◊〉_d not_o only_a misinterpretation_n of_o the_o sense_n but_o also_o ignorance_n of_o the_o text_n may_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o 〈◊〉_d this_o same_o ignorance_n in_o grammar_n make_v you_o in_o this_o b._n this_o repl._n pag._n 35._o in_o margin_n lit_fw-fr b._n your_o reply_n in_o proof_n that_o protestant_n acknowledge_v some_o place_n obscure_a in_o scripture_n to_o cite_v these_o word_n of_o your_o fellow-minister_n paraeus_n non_fw-fr n●g●mus_fw-la scripturam_fw-la nihil_fw-la habere_fw-la obscuritatis_fw-la be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d the_o plain_a contrary_n of_o what_o you_o intend_v for_o what_o be_v non_fw-la negamus_fw-la but_o we_o affirm_v scripturam_fw-la nihi●_fw-la habere_fw-la obscuritatis_fw-la the_o scripture_n to_o be_v no_o where_o obscure_a to_o prove_v that_o we_o make_v scripture_n subject_a to_o 〈◊〉_d pope_n you_o cite_v the_o dictate_v of_o gregory_n the_o 7._o set_v down_o by_o baronius_n contain_v certain_a privilege_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n whereof_o one_o be_v quòd_fw-la nullum_fw-la capitulum_n nullusque_fw-la libre_fw-la canonicus_n habeatur_fw-la sine_fw-la authoritate_fw-la ipsius_fw-la you_o fine_a you_o reply_n pag._n 92._o in_o fine_a translate_v thus_o that_o no_o chapter_n no_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v esteem_v canonical_a without_o 〈◊〉_d authority_n in_o which_o translation_n you_o show_v both_o falsehood_n and_o ignorance_n falsehood_n in_o that_o you_o add_v to_o the_o text_n elsewhere_o text_n this_o you_o have_v do_v not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n but_o also_o in_o your_o orthodox_n three_o or_o four_o time_n as_o in_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a pag._n 10._o &_o elsewhere_o in_o the_o same_o letter_n as_o part_v thereof_o no_o ●●●pter_n of_o scripture_n no_o book_n of_o scripture_n those_o word_n 〈◊〉_d be_v in_o the_o latin_a text_n nor_o in_o the_o sense_n for_o if_o it_o ●●re_v grant_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v here_o speak_v of_o the_o chapter_n of_o book_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o mean_v 〈◊〉_d book_n of_o scripture_n but_o rather_o the_o book_n of_o canon_n law_n which_o law_n in_o that_o age_n gratianus_n age_n burchardus_fw-la isidorus_n gratianus_n diverse_a do_v begin_v to_o compile_v &_o gather_v together_o into_o volume_n and_o so_o he_o define_v that_o no_o chapter_n that_o no_o book_n of_o canon_n or_o church-law_n be_v hold_v authentical_a without_o his_o approbation_n ignorance_n because_o common_a sense_n may_v have_v teach_v you_o that_o this_o decree_n can_v not_o be_v underderstood_v of_o chapter_n or_o book_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o to_o put_v chapter_n before_o book_n and_o to_o say_v no_o chapter_n of_o book_n nor_o any_o book_n shall_v be_v hold_v canonical_a without_o the_o pope_n be_v idle_a and_o senseless_a for_o if_o no_o chapter_n can_v be_v canonical_a without_o the_o pope_n much_o less_o a_o whole_a book_n so_o that_o have_v say_v that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o chapter_n be_v hold_v canonical_a without_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v senseless_a to_o add_v the_o same_o of_o whole_a book_n this_o speech_n be_v as_o foolish_a as_o this_o shall_v one_o say_v not_o any_o person_n nor_o any_o whole_a family_n come_v to_o church_n or_o as_o this_o he_o read_v not_o one_o line_n nor_o one_o chapter_n nor_o one_o book_n whereas_o sense_n will_v say_v not_o one_o book_n not_o one_o chapter_n not_o one_o line_n three_o a_o little_a skill_n in_o latin_a join_v with_o judgement_n will_v have_v easy_o find_v out_o the_o true_a and_o coherent_a sense_n of_o this_o dictate_v for_o capitulum_n signifyes_n not_o only_o a_o chapter_n of_o a_o book_n but_o also_o a_o chapter-house_n or_o college_n of_o canon_n libre_fw-la signifyes_n no●_n only_o a_o book_n but_o also_o free_a and_o exempt_a canonical_a also_o as_o every_o man_n know_v signifyes_n not_o only_o canonical_a but_o also_o a_o cannon_n or_o prebend_n so_o that_o the_o pope_n privilege_n quòd_fw-la nullum_fw-la capitulum_n nullusq●●_n libre_fw-la canonicus_n habeatur_fw-la absque_fw-la illius_fw-la authoritate_fw-la be_v thus_o in_o english_a that_o no_o chapter-house_n or_o college_n of_o canon_n nor_o any_o single_a canon_n or_o prebend_n be_v free_a &_o exempt_a fro●_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o ordinary_a but_o by_o the_o pope_n authority_n 〈◊〉_d sole_a authority_n of_o metropolitan_o or_o primate_fw-la not_o 〈◊〉_d sufficient_a to_o make_v such_o exemption_n as_o for_o ●●okes_n of_o scripture_n we_o teach_v that_o they_o all_o be_v divine_a and_o canonical_a in_o themselves_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n ●●_o own_o to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n some_o very_a few_o except_v that_o have_v be_v canonise_v unto_o we_o by_o general_a counsel_n and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o sole_a and_o single_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n behold_v how_o wide_o off_o the_o mark_n you_o shoot_v through_o your_o ignorance_n of_o
recom_v sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la ergo_fw-la a_o christian_n be_v build_v fundamental_o on_o scripture_n i_o wish_v that_o this_o my_o discovery_n may_v make_v you_o wise_a unto_o your_o eternal_a salvation_n as_o be_v do_v lay_v open_a your_o shameful_a ignorance_n unto_o your_o temporal_a disgrace_n for_o here_o you_o be_v so_o gross_o and_o together_o unlucky_o ignorant_a as_o you_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o very_a same_o fault_n in_o logic_n whereof_o without_o cause_n you_o charge_v your_o adversary_n as_o peccant_a to_o wit_n of_o make_v syllogism_n whereof_o both_o proposition_n be_v affirmative_a in_o the_o second_o figure_n a_o argument_n be_v affirmative_a in_o the_o second_o figure_n when_o the_o mean_n of_o proof_n be_v affirm_v in_o both_o proposition_n your_o mean_n to_o prove_v that_o a_o christian_n be_v fundamental_o build_v on_o scripture_n be_v this_o term_n build_v on_o the_o rock_n and_o this_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n affirm_v in_o both_o your_o proposition_n in_o your_o mayor_n build_v on_o the_o rock_n be_v affirm_v of_o the_o christian_a the_o christian_a or_o he_o that_o be_v fundamental_o build_v be_v build_v on_o the_o rock_n in_o the_o minor_a the_o same_o be_v affirm_v of_o he_o that_o be_v build_v on_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rock_n that_o be_v he_o that_o be_v build_v on_o the_o scripture_n be_v build_v on_o the_o rock_n hence_o your_o conclusion_n ergo_fw-la the_o christian_n or_o he_o that_o be_v fundamental_o build_v be_v build_v on_o the_o scripture_n be_v affirmative_a in_o the_o second_o figure_n how_o fond_a &_o inconsequent_a this_o form_n of_o argue_v be_v you_o may_v feel_v by_o this_o of_o the_o same_o tenor_n with_o change_n of_o matter_n he_o that_o be_v bear_v in_o sicily_n be_v bear_v in_o a_o island_n he_o that_o be_v bear_v in_o england_n be_v bear_v in_o a_o island_n ergo_fw-la he_o that_o be_v bear_v in_o england_n be_v bear_v in_o sicily_n this_o be_v a_o foolish_a sophism_n because_o conclude_v affirmative_o in_o the_o second_o figure_n &_o so_o be_v you_o for_o as_o it_o be_v not_o consequent_a if_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v in_o a_o island_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o sicily_n because_o there_o be_v other_o land_n beside_o sicily_n so_o this_o be_v no_o good_a consequence_n a_o christian_n be_v build_v on_o the_o rock_n ergo_fw-la on_o the_o scripture_n because_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o only_a rock_n the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n be_v a_o rock_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n no_o less_o sure_a &_o infallible_a then_o scripture_n or_o god_n word_n as_o write_v abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n joseph_n and_o innumerable_a other_o holy_a person_n be_v fundamental_o build_v in_o faith_n &_o yet_o not_o build_v on_o scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o be_v then_o extant_a in_o writing_n s._n irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o do_v write_v that_o in_o his_o day_n many_o nation_n be_v christian_a and_o do_v diligent_o observe_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n print_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o yet_o have_v not_o any_o scripture_n nor_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o write_v false_a then_o be_v this_o negative_a which_o your_o argument_n put_v into_o true_a form_n do_v imply_v no_o man_n be_v build_v fundamental_o on_o the_o rock_n that_o be_v not_o build_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o write_v your_o three_o argument_n 48._o argument_n reply_v pag._n 48._o the_o seed_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o root_n and_o foundation_n of_o every_o christian_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o faith_n joan._n 20.41_o for_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n luc._n 8.11_o joan._n 1.18_o 1._o cor._n 4.15_o this_o argument_n be_v also_o a_o idle_a fallacy_n and_o sophististicall_a sillogisme_n for_o both_o the_o proposition_n thereof_o be_v particular_a which_o form_n as_o have_v be_v say_v be_v vicious_a and_o not_o lawful_a in_o any_o figure_n this_o you_o may_v perceive_v by_o this_o argument_n form_v punctual_o according_a to_o the_o shape_n of_o you_o with_o change_n of_o matter_n the_o seed_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o root_n and_o foundation_n of_o every_o christian._n but_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n ergo_fw-la the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n be_v the_o root_n and_o foundation_n of_o every_o christian._n this_o argument_n be_v like_o you_o and_o both_o be_v vain_a because_o the_o argument_n be_v in_o the_o first_o figure_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v particular_a which_o ought_v to_o be_v universal_a in_o this_o sort_n every_o seed_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o root_n of_o every_o christian_a the_o scripture_n or_o word_n of_o god_n as_o write_v be_v the_o seed_n of_o faith_n ergo._n the_o scripture_n or_o word_n of_o god_n as_o write_v be_v the_o root_n of_o every_o christian._n this_o argument_n be_v in_o lawful_a form_n but_o the_o mayor_n thereof_o be_v false_a for_o every_o seed_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o root_n of_o a_o christian_a but_o only_o that_o seed_n which_o first_o breed_v faith_n in_o he_o and_o whereon_o all_o other_o seed_n depend_v now_o the_o seed_n which_o first_o breed_v faith_n in_o christian_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o write_v but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n for_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o tradition_n we_o know_v the_o write_a word_n and_o without_o this_o ordinary_o speak_v and_o without_o new_a immediate_a revelation_n we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n or_o write_v word_n to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o of_o god_n ergo_fw-la the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o as_o write_v but_o as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n be_v that_o seed_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o root_n of_o every_o christian._n the_o four_o argument_n 48._o argument_n reply_n pag._n 48._o the_o scripture_n give_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n be_v simple_o and_o without_o exception_n to_o be_v receive_v and_o all_o tradition_n repugnant_a to_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v refuse_v hence_o it_o follow_v that_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o tradition_n and_o not_o tradition_n of_o scripture_n this_o argument_n proceed_v upon_o the_o supposal_n of_o a_o impossibility_n &_o so_o be_v idle_a sophistical_a inept_v logician_n be_v teach_v by_o their_o master_n aristotle_n if_o one_o impossibility_n be_v admit_v a_o thousand_o other_o impossibilitye_n and_o absurditye_n will_v be_v thence_o concude_v you_o suppose_v in_o this_o argument_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o deliver_v by_o full_a tradition_n may_v be_v repugnant_a unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o write_v hence_o you_o infer_v that_o tradition_n be_v not_o simple_o to_o be_v receive_v but_o only_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n your_o supposition_n be_v blasphemous_a for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a can_v be_v repugnant_a unto_o truth_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prime_a verity_n that_o can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v this_o impossibility_n suppose_v your_o consequence_n be_v not_o good_a ergo_fw-la tradition_n repugnant_a to_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o scripture_n to_o be_v hold_v only_o &_o simple_o as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o god_n unwritten_a word_n can_v be_v repugnant_a unto_o the_o write_a it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o unwritten_a word_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o the_o write_v simple_o to_o be_v receive_v but_o that_o neither_o the_o write_v nor_o unwritten_a be_v to_o be_v credit_v this_o be_v clear_a because_o if_o god_n may_v lie_v and_o deceyve_v we_o by_o his_o word_n of_o lively_a voice_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n why_o not_o also_o in_o his_o writing_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n what_o authority_n do_v write_v add_v to_o god_n word_n that_o god_n can_v lie_v in_o writing_n if_o he_o may_v lie_v in_o speak_v i_o hope_v i_o have_v show_v apparent_o these_o your_o argument_n wherein_o you_o so_o much_o glory_n to_o be_v not_o only_o false_a in_o respect_n of_o matter_n but_o also_o fallacious_a in_o respect_n of_o form_n the_o same_o i_o can_v show_v of_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o argument_n of_o this_o your_o reply_n be_v not_o then_o the_o case_n of_o your_o ignorant_a proselyte_n most_o deplorable_a and_o desperate_a who_o you_o persuade_v to_o trust_v these_o your_o halt_a consequence_n rather_o than_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n you_o will_v have_v they_o to_o make_v themselves_o judge_n not_o only_o of_o what_o be_v contain_v express_o in_o scripture_n but_o also_o of_o what_o be_v thence_o derive_v by_o argument_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n wherein_o if_o they_o chance_v to_o mistake_v they_o err_v and_o be_v damn_v the_o three_o example_n §._o 3._o a_o three_o example_n of_o logical_a ignorance_n be_v your_o heap_v together_o of_o many_o fond_a
subscribe_v unto_o as_o contain_v etc._n contain_v see_v the_o approbation_n i_o francis_n white_n etc._n etc._n nothing_o but_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o public_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o yet_o here_o you_o say_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n &_o son_n of_o perdition_n so_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v of_o their_o number_n who_o the_o say_a author_n in_o that_o very_a place_n do_v rebuke_v as_o omnium_fw-la horarum_fw-la homines_fw-la halter_n in_o opinion_n for_o private_a end_n i_o omit_v also_o your_o folly_n in_o exclaim_v at_o the_o misery_n of_o english_a romist_n for_o that_o they_o adhere_v unto_o your_o suppose_a antichrist_n not_o mark_v that_o to_o cleave_v to_o the_o antichrist_n of_o your_o form_n must_v even_o according_a to_o your_o own_o principle_n be_v singular_a happiness_n for_o antichrist_n according_a to_o your_o tenet_n do_v sit_v &_o govern_v in_o the_o house_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o so_o by_o the_o same_o breath_n wherewith_o you_o make_v man_n vassal_n of_o antichrist_n you_o make_v they_o god_n domestic_n his_o house_n his_o temple_n will_v it_o be_v misery_n to_o be_v find_v such_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n yea_o rather_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v only_o one_o out_o of_o which_o no_o salvation_n be_v have_v what_o a_o misery_n will_v it_o be_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o by_o your_o own_o mouth_n you_o shall_v be_v convince_v to_o have_v forsake_v that_o company_n which_o you_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o church_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n through_o fear_n of_o your_o own_o shadow_n and_o fancy_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o foolish_a then_o to_o fasten_v the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n upon_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n who_o do_v daily_o profess_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n who_o by_o his_o adherent_n do_v more_o than_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o defend_v and_o propagate_v among_o pagan_n his_o most_o holy_a name_n &_o religion_n but_o to_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v mark_v how_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o in_o say_v on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o that_o can_v be_v the_o house_n &_o temple_n of_o god_n which_o now_o have_v or_o in_o former_a time_n have_v have_v wicked_a pastor_n on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o that_o be_v the_o house_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n in_o which_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o wicked_a pastor_n have_v a_o long_a while_n for_o many_o age_n govern_v and_o do_v rule_v and_o govern_v so_o hard_o be_v it_o for_o man_n blind_v with_o passion_n against_o christian_a doctrine_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o run_v in_o their_o passionate_a conceit_n without_o fall_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o open_a contradiction_n whereby_o their_o folly_n come_v to_o be_v manifest_a unto_o all_o man_n the_o three_o error_n you_o profess_v infidelity_n about_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n §._o 3._o thus_o you_o write_v pag._n 179._o to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o jesuit_n speech_n that_o we_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n or_o else_o the_o main_n article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o christ_n be_v still_o in_o hea●en_n because_o we_o will_v not_o allow_v a_o body_n in_o two_o place_n at_o ●nce_n i_o answer_v we_o can_v grant_v that_o one_o individual_a ●ody_n may_v be_v in_o many_o distant_a place_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o instant_n of_o time_n until_o the_o papall_v demonstrate_v the_o possibility_n thereof_o by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n ●r_o by_o apparent_a reason_n thus_o you_o this_o be_v plain_a dea●ing_n and_o open_a profession_n of_o infidelity_n for_o what_o ●s_v heretical_a obstinacy_n but_o to_o reject_v the_o word_n of_o god_n ●bout_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o plain_n express_a and_o literal_a sense_n until_o the_o possibility_n of_o ●hat_n sense_n be_v first_o demonstrate_v no_o heretic_n be_v e●er_o so_o barbarous_a as_o to_o prefer_v his_o reason_n beyond_o god_n word_n so_o far_o as_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contrary_a to_o his_o reason_n be_v false_a their_o impiety_n be_v to_o reject_v god_n word_n about_o some_o mystery_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n fly_v to_o moral_a and_o mystical_a interpretation_n because_o they_o can_v not_o comprehend_v and_o therefore_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o possibility_n of_o the_o plain_n and_o literal_a sense_n the_o arrian_n do_v not_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n say_v 7_o say_v 1._o joan._n ●_o 7_o of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o holy_a ghost_n these_o three_o be_v one_o nor_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n 10.30_o christ_n joan._n 10.30_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o to_o be_v true_a moral_o and_o mystical_o in_o respect_n of_o unity_n by_o singular_a affection_n and_o consent_n betwixt_o these_o three_o person_n they_o be_v heretic_n for_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o these_o word_n in_o the_o proper_a and_o substantial_a sense_n because_o the_o same_o seem_v to_o they_o impossible_a for_o see_v that_o we_o may_v not_o expound_v the_o scripture_n about_o mystery_n of_o faith_n to_o a_o easy_a figurative_a sense_n when_o the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n go_v beyond_o the_o capacity_n of_o our_o understanding_n god_n do_v so_o often_o in_o holy_a writ_n 9.22_o writ_n gen._n 18.17_o numquid_fw-la deo_fw-la quid_fw-la est_fw-la difficile_fw-la hie●rm_n 32.17_o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr difficile_fw-la tibi_fw-la omne_fw-la verbum_fw-la et_fw-fr v._n 27._o numquid_fw-la mihi_fw-la difficile_fw-la erit_fw-la omne_fw-la verbum_fw-la luc._n 1.37_o non_fw-la erit_fw-la impossibile_fw-it apud_fw-la deum_fw-la omne_fw-la verbum_fw-la et_fw-la deo_fw-la omne_fw-la possibilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la matt._n ●9_n 26_o luc._n 18.27_o omnia_fw-la possibilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la credenti_fw-la mar._n 9.22_o assure_v we_o that_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a or_o difficile_a unto_o he_o and_o 9.10_o and_o job._n 9.10_o that_o he_o can_v do_v thing_n incomprehensible_a without_o number_n what_o great_a obstinacy_n then_o for_o christian_a man_n to_o profess_v that_o they_o will_v never_o believe_v his_o word_n about_o the_o mysterye_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n until_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o sense_n be_v demonstrate_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v bring_v within_o the_o compass_n and_o comprehension_n of_o their_o wit_n you_o may_v perchance_o excuse_v yourself_o by_o say_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n institution_n this_o be_v my_o body_n take_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n do_v not_o enforce_v that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o corporal_a substance_n be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o i_o answer_v this_o you_o can_v say_v without_o contradict_v not_o only_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o rejoinder_n but_o also_o yourself_o for_o you_o do_v plain_o affirm_v that_o this_o our_o doctrine_n yea_o even_a transubstantiation_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n if_o say_v you_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o eucharist_n than_o the_o word_n be_v figurative_a and_o can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o proper_a sense_n because_o one_o individual_a substance_n can_v be_v predicate_v of_o another_o proper_o thus_o you_o 3●7_n you_o reply_v pag._n 3●7_n whereupon_o i_o thus_o argue_v that_o without_o which_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n be_v enforce_v and_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n take_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n but_o except_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v absent_a and_o christ_n in_o lieu_n thereof_o present_a according_a to_o his_o corporal_a substance_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o literal_a and_o proper_a sense_n as_o you_o affirm_v ergo_fw-la transubstantiation_n and_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n according_a to_o his_o bodily_a substance_n in_o lieu_n of_o bread_n be_v enforce_v &_o prove_v by_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n institution_n wherefore_o to_o profess_v as_o you_o ●o_o never_o to_o believe_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o until_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v unto_o you_o to_o be_v possible_a be_v to_o profess_v you_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n about_o mystery_n of_o faith_n further_o than_o the_o possibility_n thereof_o can_v be_v make_v evident_a unto_o you_o be_v not_o this_o to_o profess_v infidelity_n second_o you_o may_v say_v that_o when_o you_o require_v that_o we_o demonstrate_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o a_o body_n may_v be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o you_o mean_v not_o that_o we_o bring_v text_n of_o
scripture_n that_o demonstrate_v by_o reason_n how_o this_o be_v possible_a but_o only_o that_o we_o bring_v place_n that_o express_o say_v that_o this_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n for_o as_o you_o say_v pag._n 438._o in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n concern_v accident_n without_o a_o subject_n or_o of_o a_o body_n be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o or_o concern_v any_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o god_n omnipotency_n i_o answer_v that_o likewise_o in_o this_o text_n of_o scripture_n 1●_n scripture_n joan._n 1_o 1●_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n that_o a_o perfect_a substantial_a nature_n can_v exist_v without_o proper_a personality_n or_o that_o two_o complete_a nature_n can_v subsist_v together_o in_o the_o same_o hypostasis_fw-la nor_o of_o any_o miracle_n do_v by_o the_o divine_a omnipotency_n yet_o because_o this_o text_n of_o scripture_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o literal_a sense_n except_o those_o hard_a &_o incomprehensible_a thing_n be_v grant_v to_o be_v possible_a by_o divine_a omnipotency_n we_o must_v together_o with_o the_o mystery_n implicit_o believe_v that_o god_n can_v separate_v proper_a subsistence_n from_o complete_a substantial_a nature_n that_o two_o nature_n infinite_o distant_a in_o perfection_n can_v subsist_v in_o the_o same_o hypostasis_fw-la though_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o express_o so_o affirm_v in_o like_a manner_n though_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v not_o express_o say_v that_o his_o body_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o nor_o that_o accident_n can_v exist_v without_o a_o subject_n by_o divine_a omnipotency_n yet_o because_o this_o his_o word_n whereon_o we_o ground_n our_o faith_n concern_v this_o mystery_n can_v as_o yourself_o grant_v be_v true_a in_o the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n except_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o be_v believe_v hence_o we_o must_v together_o with_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n implicit_o believe_v these_o miracle_n to_o be_v do_v wherefore_o in_o say_v you_o will_v never_o believe_v they_o except_o their_o possibility_n be_v first_o demonstrate_v unto_o you_o through_o ignorance_n of_o theology_n you_o profess_v infidelity_n for_o to_o resolve_v not_o to_o believe_v seem_v implicancy_n involue_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n except_o they_o be_v either_o several_o express_v as_o possible_a in_o god_n word_n or_o else_o demonstrable_a by_o reason_n be_v the_o right_a way_n to_o believe_v just_a nothing_o there_o be_v no_o mystery_n of_o faith_n which_o do_v not_o imply_v some_o difficultye_n the_o possibility_n of_o which_o be_v neither_o express_o aver_v in_o scripture_n nor_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o reason_n a_o four_o example_n of_o your_o ignorance_n in_o theology_n §._o 4._o i_o add_v another_o example_n about_o the_o bless_a eucharist_n wherein_o you_o discover_v gross_a ignorance_n not_o only_o against_o theology_n but_o even_o common_a sense_n and_o this_o example_n may_v serve_v as_o a_o pattern_n how_o insufficient_o and_o impertinent_o you_o answer_v the_o jesuite_n argument_n the_o jesuit_n pag._n 406._o argue_v in_o this_o sort_n christ_n do_v affirm_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v true_o real_o substantial_o not_o the_o figure_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o body_n but_o his_o very_a body_n but_o how_o can_v consecrate_v bread_n be_v term_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o his_o body_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o it_o thus_o you_o answer_v pag._n 406._o to_o the_o effect_v hereof_o local_a &_o corporal_a presence_n be_v not_o necessary_a a_o father_n and_o his_o son_n may_v be_v absent_a by_o distance_n of_o place_n one_o from_o the_o other_o yet_o the_o son_n be_v true_o and_o real_o unite_v with_o his_o father_n so_o as_o his_o father_n nature_n be_v in_o he_o and_o he_o have_v right_a in_o his_o father_n person_n and_o state_n a_o man_n good_n may_v be_v at_o constantinople_n and_o yet_o he_o live_v in_o england_n be_v a_o true_a possessor_n and_o owner_n of_o they_o and_o he_o may_v communicate_v and_o use_v they_o and_o distance_n of_o place_n hinder_v not_o his_o right_a and_o propriety_n now_o although_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o thing_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a yet_o thus_o far_o there_o be_v agreement_n that_o even_o as_o we_o possess_v temporal_a thing_n be_v local_o absent_a so_o likewise_o we_o may_v receyve_v and_o partake_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n by_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n and_o donation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o a_o celestial_a and_o spiritual_a manner_n thus_o you_o now_o behold_v how_o many_o way_n you_o discover_v gross_a ignorance_n in_o this_o answer_n first_o be_v all_o that_o you_o say_v true_a yet_o be_v it_o impertinent_a and_o inept_o bring_v in_o answer_n of_o the_o jesuit_n argument_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o man_n may_v receive_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o faith_n and_o donation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n sanctity_n and_o grace_n through_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n that_o be_v absent_a for_o this_o all_o acknowledge_v to_o happen_v in_o baptism_n and_o to_o be_v possible_a in_o the_o eucharist_n if_o christ_n have_v so_o ordain_v the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n whether_o consecrate_a bread_n may_v be_v true_o and_o real_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v as_o you_o say_v a_o thing_n not_o only_o individual_o distinct_a but_o also_o local_o distant_a from_o his_o body_n a_o man_n be_v in_o london_n may_v possess_v iuridical_o a_o horse_n that_o be_v in_o the_o country_n be_v it_o therefore_o true_a to_o say_v that_o this_o man_n in_o london_n be_v true_o &_o real_o the_o horse_n in_o the_o country_n a_o merchant_n in_o london_n may_v have_v great_a treasure_n of_o money_n in_o constantinople_n and_o a_o right_a to_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o his_o coffer_n at_o london_n may_v one_o therefore_o show_v his_o empty_a coffer_n at_o london_n say_v true_o this_o be_v a_o treasure_n of_o money_n in_o like_a manner_n suppose_v which_o be_v false_a that_o a_o man_n have_v iuridicall_a authority_n over_o christ_n body_n absent_a and_o exist_v in_o heaven_n to_o dispose_v thereof_o at_o his_o pleasure_n may_v he_o therefore_o be_v say_v to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o christ_n body_n may_v one_o therefore_o show_v the_o sacrament_n be_v in_o your_o tenet_n a_o empty_a thing_n in_o respect_n of_o contain_v christ_n bodily_a substance_n say_v true_o thereof_o this_o be_v real_o christ_n body_n and_o corporal_a substance_n who_o will_v maintain_v such_o absurdity_n that_o be_v sober_a wherefore_o your_o discourse_n that_o a_o man_n may_v true_o posesse_v a_o thing_n absent_a serve_v nothing_o to_o satisfy_v the_o jesuite_n question_n how_o can_v consecrate_v bread_n be_v true_o very_o &_o real_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o present_v in_o place_n with_o it_o second_o what_o more_o absurd_a than_o what_o you_o affirm_v that_o a_o man_n may_v not_o only_o in_o right_n possess_v but_o real_o and_o true_o use_v his_o thing_n that_o be_v absent_a can_v a_o man_n in_o london_n use_v and_o ride_v on_o his_o horse_n that_o be_v at_o york_n or_o a_o merchant_n in_o bristol_n feed_v on_o his_o grape_n that_o be_v grow_v in_o his_o vineyard_n in_o spain_n if_o they_o can_v and_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o say_v they_o can_v how_o can_v a_o man_n exist_v on_o earth_n receive_v true_o and_o real_o christ_n distant_a from_o he_o as_o far_o as_o the_o high_a heaven_n receive_v he_o i_o say_v not_o in_o a_o sign_n only_o &_o according_a to_o gracious_a effect_n but_o even_o according_a to_o his_o body_n and_o corporal_a substance_n with_o their_o mouth_n of_o flesh_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n or_o this_o be_v soule-feeding_a grace_n give_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o my_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n even_o to_o your_o corporal_a mouth_n wherewith_o i_o bid_v you_o to_o take_v and_o eat_v it_o three_o who_o can_v forbear_v laugh_v to_o hear_v you_o so_o sober_o affirm_v that_o the_o son_n that_o be_v absent_a from_o his_o father_n as_o far_o as_o constantinople_n be_v from_o london_n be_v not_o only_o moral_o by_o love_n and_o affection_n but_o true_o and_o real_o unite_v with_o his_o father_n for_o union_n be_v the_o way_n unto_o unity_n so_o that_o whensoever_o two_o individual_a thing_n be_v true_o &_o real_o unite_v by_o this_o union_n be_v make_v a_o three_o individual_a thing_n distinct_a from_o each_o of_o they_o a_o part_n &_o from_o all_o other_o
〈◊〉_d tradition_n unwritten_a &_o that_o this_o be_v the_o prime_a ground_n of_o ●ayth_n more_o fundamental_a than_o scripture_n you_o most_o large_o labour_v to_o refel_v and_o term_v it_o pag._n 91._o a_o anti-●hristian_a and_o impudent_a assertion_n to_o depress_v the_o write_a ●ord_n of_o god_n &_o exalt_v the_o profane_a bastardly_a apocryphal_a tradition_n of_o the_o pope_n this_o be_v bitter_a enough_o &_o yet_o cer●●ynly_o you_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n maintain_v and_o uphold_v the_o scripture_n in_o authority_n or_o 〈◊〉_d you_o speak_v inept_o not_o know_v what_o you_o affirm_v for_o some_o two_o page_n before_o this_o your_o reproachful_a word_n to_o wit_n pag._n 89._o you_o thus_o distinguish_v about_o tradition_n the_o church_n have_v no_o perpetual_a tradition_n but_o such_o as_o be_v either_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o which_o be_v subseruient_fw-fr to_o maintain_v the_o faith_n verity_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o thus_o you_o i_o demand_v of_o you_o these_o subseruient_fw-fr traditious_a about_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n be_v they_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o they_o be_v your_o distinction_n be_v senseless_a one_o member_n thereof_o not_o be_v condistinct_a against_o the_o other_o for_o if_o subseruient_fw-fr tradition_n be_v tradition_n contain_v in_o scripture_n what_o more_o inept_v then_o to_o say_v tradition_n either_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o subseruient_fw-fr if_o they_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o condistinct_a from_o they_o then_o according_a to_o your_o distinction_n there_o be_v some_o tradition_n not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n which_o maintain_v and_o uphold_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o verity_n and_o doctrine_n thereof_o if_o you_o grant_v this_o as_o you_o must_v unless_o you_o will_v grant_v your_o distinction_n be_v void_a of_o judgement_n then_o must_v you_o also_o grant_v tradition_n to_o be_v more_o fundamental_a than_o scripture_n for_o thus_o i_o argue_v that_o which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v more_o fundamental_a than_o scripture_n that_o which_o do_v maintain_v and_o uphold_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la that_o which_o do_v uphold_v and_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v more_o fundamental_a than_o scripture_n now_o yourself_o ascribe_v unto_o tradition_n subseruient_fw-fr condistinct_a against_o write_a tradition_n the_o office_n of_o mantayn_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n so_o that_o either_o you_o know_v not_o what_o you_o do_v write_v or_o else_o by_o your_o own_o distinction_n you_o be_v convince_v to_o establish_v that_o very_a doctrine_n which_o elsewhere_o you_o so_o sharp_o censure_v as_o antichristian_a impudent_a profane_a bastardly_a certain_o you_o be_v a_o silly_a disputant_n about_o matter_n of_o theodogy_n no_o more_o sense_n or_o judgement_n be_v there_o in_o the_o distinction_n you_o make_v of_o holy_a believer_n into_o triumphant_a &_o militant_a pag._n 49._o the_o term_n church_n say_v you_o be_v take_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o universal_a number_n of_o holy_a believer_n in_o all_o age_n and_o more_o strict_o for_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o holy_a believer_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n hebr._n 12.23_o apoc._n 5.9_o ephes._n 5.25.27_o and_o thus_o it_o comprehend_v both_o the_o church_n militant_a &_o triumphant_a thus_o you_o distinguish_v the_o church_n of_o believer_n into_o militant_a and_o triumphant_a whence_o it_o be_v consequent_a that_o the_o triumphant_a saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v believer_n what_o more_o ridiculous_a and_o against_o the_o prime_n and_o know_a notion_n of_o triumphant_a saint_n it_o may_v be_v god_n permit_v you_o to_o stumble_v upon_o this_o gross_a simplicity_n through_o want_n of_o reflection_n that_o you_o may_v thereby_o be_v warn_v to_o reflect_v upon_o the_o foulness_n of_o another_o doctrine_n which_o witting_o &_o wilful_o you_o maintain_v though_o be_v no_o less_o exorbitant_a than_o this_o the_o doctrine_n be_v that_o your_o protestant_a militant_a church_n be_v a_o multitude_n who_o 309._o who_o john_n white_a in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 309._o by_o divine_a illumination_n see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o other_o mysterye_n &_o that_o you_o be_v like_v not_o unto_o man_n 108._o man_n francis_n white_a orthodox_n pag._n 108._o which_o see_v a_o far_o off_o a_o certain_a obscure_a glimmer_a of_o the_o light_n but_o unto_o man_n that_o come_n to_o the_o place_n where_o the_o light_n be_v behold_v the_o say_a light_n in_o itself_o very_o to_o term_v the_o church_n militant_a a_o multitude_n of_o beholder_n resolve_v of_o truth_n by_o manifest_a light_n &_o evidence_n be_v as_o exotic_a and_o as_o idle_a gibberish_n in_o christian_a theology_n as_o to_o call_v the_o church_n triumphant_a a_o multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o war_n and_o walk_v by_o faith_n as_o for_o your_o protestant_a triumphant_a church_n if_o they_o do_v not_o former_o believe_v in_o this_o life_n the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o see_v the_o light_n lustre_n and_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o as_o you_o pretend_v they_o do_v not_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o they_o be_v believer_n in_o the_o next_o world_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o number_n of_o they_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v 2.9_o joan._n 2.9_o credunt_fw-la &_o contremiscunt_fw-la ignorance_n in_o scripture_n sect_n iv_o concern_v holy_a scripture_n you_o brag_v intolerable_o in_o every_o page_n of_o your_o reply_n how_o the_o same_o stand_v clear_o on_o your_o side_n and_o that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v any_o of_o the_o nine_o point_n by_o scripture_n how_o vain_a this_o your_o vant_n be_v do_v appear_v by_o the_o rejoinder_n wherein_o you_o be_v prove_v almost_o in_o every_o controversy_n to_o forsake_v the_o literal_a and_o plain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o devise_v now_o figurative_a typical_a and_o mystical_a interpretation_n how_o idle_o also_o you_o dispute_v out_o of_o scripture_n for_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n which_o you_o most_o confident_o maintain_v in_o your_o religion_n be_v make_v evident_a by_o what_o have_v be_v show_v concern_v your_o argue_v for_o the_o pretend_a divine_a ordinance_n bind_v ignorant_a layman_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n notwithstanding_o that_o your_o ignorance_n herein_o may_v more_o indeniable_o appear_v i_o will_v add_v here_o some_o other_o argument_n and_o token_n of_o the_o same_o to_o wit_n unto_o what_o shameful_a shift_n you_o be_v force_v to_o answer_v scripture_n bring_v by_o your_o adversary_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n you_o deny_v the_o text_n and_o context_n of_o scripture_n §._o 1._o first_o many_o time_n you_o be_v enforce_v by_o your_o adversary_n when_o you_o can_v answer_v to_o deny_v the_o ●ext_n &_o context_n of_o scripture_n whereof_o i_o allege_v two_o example's_n the_o jesuit_n pag._n 480._o to_o prove_v that_o christ_n promise_v eternal_a life_n unto_o the_o worthy_a participant_a ●f_n the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n bring_v ●he_n word_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 6._o qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la hunc_fw-la ●anem_fw-la vivet_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v ●ue_v for_o ever_o you_o in_o the_o place_n quote_v answer_n the_o scripture_n john_n 6.51_o say_v not_o whosoever_o eat_v sacramental_a bread_n without_o wine_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o but_o if_o any_o ●●te_n this_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o wit_n christ_n ●●sus_fw-la incarnate_a shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o then_o it_o follow_v ●nlesse_a you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v 〈◊〉_d blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o john_n 5.53_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d now_o mark_v unto_o what_o strait_n maugre_o your_o ●●agging_n you_o be_v bring_v by_o the_o jesuite_n first_o you_o be_v not_o acknowledge_v these_o word_n cite_v by_o the_o jesuit_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ever_o to_o be_v our_o ●●uiours_n but_o only_o those_o if_o any_o shall_v eat_v etc._n etc._n wher●●_n they_o be_v our_o saviour_n &_o the_o express_a text_n of_o scripture_n in_o so_o many_o word_n &_o syllable_n john_n 6.59_o which_o ●●yth_v he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ever_o se●●ndly_o you_o be_v compel_v to_o answer_v that_o christ_n ●●ter_v he_o have_v say_v he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ●●er_n say_v unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o ●●oud_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o ●ou_fw-mi by_o which_o ensue_a sentence_n he_o do_v as_o you_o think_v ●eclare_v the_o former_a if_o any_o eat_v this_o bread_n etc._n etc._n that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o sacramental_a bread_n without_o wine_n this_o be_v
●each_v that_o bless_a mary_n be_v a_o entire_a virgin_n only_o until_o ●er_n childbirth_n but_o according_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n he_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o virgin_n womb_n the_o same_o still_o rest_v entire_a and_o as_o a_o bridegroom_n out_o of_o his_o bride-chamber_n now_o you_o may_v crow_v and_o crake_v &_o crown_v your_o book_n as_o you_o do_v in_o your_o picture_n when_o you_o be_v so_o press_v by_o your_o adversary_n that_o you_o be_v force_v to_o defend_v your_o error_n by_o hold_v ancient_a heresye_n and_o by_o lay_v the_o term_n of_o sophistical_a inference_n upon_o the_o catholic_a faith_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n in_o answer_v scripture_n you_o contradict_v yourself_o and_o grant_v the_o jesuit_n the_o question_n §._o 4._o the_o vanity_n of_o your_o former_a brag_n that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v prove_v nothing_o by_o scripture_n be_v further_a make_v apparent_a in_o that_o he_o do_v so_o urge_v you_o with_o scripture_n as_o you_o be_v sometime_o force_v to_o contradict_v yourself_o sometime_o to_o grant_v as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v require_v against_o yourself_o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 98._o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christian_a pastor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n be_v infallible_a in_o her_o tradition_n because_o our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 28._o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n you_o answer_v pag._n 100_o that_o which_o be_v promise_v upon_o condition_n be_v not_o absolute_a until_o the_o condition_n be_v fulfil_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o apostle_n successor_n conditional_o and_o as_o they_o be_v one_o with_o the_o apostle_n by_o imitation_n &_o subordination_n that_o be_v so_o far_o as_o they_o walk_v in_o their_o step_n &_o conform_v their_o doctrine_n and_o ministry_n to_o the_o pattern_n receive_v from_o they_o thus_o you_o in_o this_o place_n but_o pag._n 174._o lin_v 21._o speak_v of_o the_o absolute_a perpetuity_n and_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n you_o say_v that_o the_o place_n matth._n 28.20_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v universal_a in_o respect_n of_o time_n and_o that_o it_o continue_v successive_o in_o all_o age_n this_o your_o say_n overthrow_v what_o you_o say_v that_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v upon_o condition_n wherein_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v fail_v for_o this_o place_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o world_n end_n do_v show_v the_o church_n to_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n no_o other_o way_n then_o because_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n be_v always_o and_o all_o day_n to_o the_o world_n end_n with_o his_o church_n &_o he_o can_v not_o be_v still_o in_o the_o world_n with_o his_o church_n except_o his_o church_n have_v still_o a_o be_v in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o place_n we_o may_v aswell_o or_o better_o say_v the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n then_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n without_o christ_n or_o his_o divine_a assistance_n to_o teach_v man_n infallible_o the_o truth_n wherefore_o if_o by_o this_o place_n we_o can_v as_o you_o say_v we_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v ever_o absolute_o assist_v of_o christ_n much_o less_o do_v this_o place_n convince_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n or_o further_a then_o conditional_o if_o it_o walk_v in_o ●he_n apostles_n doctrine_n contrariwise_o if_o this_o place_n ●rove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v absolute_o always_o in_o the_o world_n until_o the_o consummation_n thereof_o then_o à_fw-la for●iori_fw-la more_o strong_o and_o more_o direct_o do_v it_o prove_v ●hat_n christ_n be_v absolute_o &_o not_o only_o conditional_o present_a with_o his_o church_n all_o day_n to_o the_o world_n end_n ●o_o that_o to_o answer_v the_o jesuit_n proof_n of_o his_o religion_n ●y_a scripture_n you_o contradict_v yourself_o yea_o sometime_o ●rant_v against_o yourself_o as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v prove_v for_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n ●e_n bring_v pag._n 3_o the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n 3.15_o paul_n 1._o tim._n 3.15_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n &_o pillar_n of_o truth_n but_o the_o ground_n of_o ●ertaine_a &_o infallible_a truth_n such_o as_o the_o christian_a be_v ●ust_z be_v certain_a &_o infallible_a you_o answer_v pag._n 4._o lin_v ●_o if_o by_o the_o church_n we_o understand_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n ●●uing_v af●er_o the_o apostle_n the_o same_o be_v by_o office_n and_o calling_n ●he_v pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n in_o all_o age_n this_o your_o answer_n allow_v unto_o the_o jesuit_n asmuch_o as_o he_o desire_v 〈◊〉_d can_v desire_v to_o show_v the_o church_n to_o be_v always_o infallible_a for_o that_o which_o be_v by_o office_n and_o divine_a vocation_n the_o ●●llar_n and_o ground_n of_o infallible_a truth_n have_v by_o divine_a ordination_n and_o assistance_n sufficiency_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o office_n as_o be_v most_o evident_a the_o church_n ●hich_v be_v fallible_a &_o may_v err_v be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a pillar_n 〈◊〉_d ground_n that_o be_v have_v not_o sufficiency_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n 〈◊〉_d christian_a truth_n which_o be_v infallible_a for_o how_o can_v 〈◊〉_d building_n sure_a &_o immovable_a stand_n found_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d uncertain_a ruinous_a and_o totter_a foundation_n ●herfore_o see_v you_o grant_v the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v in_o all_o age_n the_o ground_n of_o truth_n by_o divine_a vocation_n unto_o that_o office_n you_o do_v consequent_o allow_v unto_o the_o jesuit_n as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v prove_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n be_v i●_n all_o age_n until_o the_o world_n end_n certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o her_o teach_n in_o lieu_n of_o answer_v you_o confirm_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n §._o 5._o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 38._o accuse_v minister_n of_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o to_o prove_v the_o sole_a sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o all_o man_n cite_v the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n 2._o tim._n 3.15_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v direct_v particular_o to_o timothy_n say_v they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n whence_o it_o be_v consequent_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o timothy_n and_o be_v sufficient_a for_o such_o man_n as_o tymothy_n be_v to_o wit_n for_o man_n learned_a and_o aforehand_o instruct_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o thereupon_o firm_o believe_v all_o the_o most_o main_a and_o necessary_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n that_o the_o scripture_n for_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n teach_v and_o ground_v in_o faith_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_a who_o will_v deny_v thus_o the_o jesuit_n unto_o who_o you_o shape_v this_o answer_n pag._n 39_o although_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v sometime_o restrain_v to_o the_o personal_a and_o particular_a subject_n of_o which_o they_o be_v first_o speak_v yet_o this_o be_v not_o general_a and_o when_o the_o same_o happen_v it_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o better_a argument_n then_o by_o the_o bare_a emphasis_n of_o a_o word_n for_o god_n say_v 〈◊〉_d josuah_n a_o man_n qualify_v above_o the_o ordinary_a rank_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v nor_o forsake_v thou_o josuah_n 1.5_o yet_o the_o promise_n employ_v in_o this_o text_n be_v general_a and_o common_a to_o all_o 〈◊〉_d person_n hebr._n 13.5_o thus_o you_o confirm_v the_o jesuit●_n ●olution_n in_o lieu_n of_o confute_v thereof_o for_o as_o the_o pro●ise_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v thou_o make_v particular_o unto_o jo●ue_n in_o regard_n he_o be_v a_o just_a man_n do_v not_o agree_v unto_o ●ll_a man_n but_o only_o unto_o such_o as_o josue_n be_v to_o wit_n ●nto_o just_a man_n and_o such_o as_o seek_v god_n as_o he_o do_v so_o the_o ●ext_n of_o s._n paul_n they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o valuation_n speak_v particular_o unto_o timothy_n in_o re●ard_n he_o be_v learn_v judicious_a aforehand_o instruct_v &_o ground_v in_o christian_a tradition_n do_v agree_v only_o to_o timothy_n and_o such_o man_n as_o timothy_n be_v to_o wit_n man_n aforehand_o teach_v and_o ground_v in_o the_o ●ayth_n of_o tradition_n on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o the_o promise_n ●ade_v to_o josue_n in_o regard_n he_o be_v a_o just_a man_n can_v ●e_v challenge_v of_o other_o man_n that_o be_v not_o just_a as_o he_o be_v &_o if_o they_o rely_v thereon_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o ●o_o the_o promise_n the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v
minister_n you_o cypher_n 1._o tim._n 6.12_o fight_v the_o good_a fight_n of_o faith_n lay_v hold_v on_o eternal_a life_n whereunto_o thou_o be_v call_v ibid._n lin_v 3._o to_o prove_v ●he_v scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o spiritual_a man_n you_o ●ypher_n 1._o cor._n 2.15_o but_o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a judge_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o which_o prove_v the_o contrary_n if_o it_o prove_v any_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o spiritual_a man_n be_v not_o judge_v and_o rule_v by_o scripture_n but_o ra●her_o the_o scripture_n be_v judge_v and_o rule_v by_o he_o pag._n ●0_n lin_v 21._o to_o prove_v that_o we_o wrong_v you_o in_o saying_n ●ou_fw-mi derogate_v from_o the_o church_n you_o cite_v matth._n 18._o ●7_n he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a &_o publican_n ibid._n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n you_o cypher_n heb._n ●●_o 17_o obey_v your_o prelate_n and_o submit_v yourself_o unto_o they_o ●ag_n 169._o lin_v 22._o to_o prove_v that_o no_o church_n ever_o pri●●d_v the_o oblation_n &_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n more_o ●●ghly_a and_o religious_o than_o you_o do_v you_o cypher_n heb._n ●_o 14_o with_o one_o oblation_n he_o do_v consummate_v for_o ever_o the_o sanctified_a and_o ephes._n 5.2_o he_o give_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n 〈◊〉_d we_o to_o a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n &_o john_n 1.29_o behold_v the_o ●ambe_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n &_o ●ct_n 4.12_o there_o be_v not_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o name_n pag._n ●1_n lin_v 1._o to_o prove_v we_o wrong_v you_o by_o say_v you_o a●●int_v that_o 126._o that_o the_o word_n of_o john_n white_a way_n pag._n 126._o every_o particular_a man_n examine_v &_o ●●dge_v of_o the_o church_n &_o her_o teach_n you_o cite_v 1._o cor._n ●_o 19_o be_v all_o apostle_n be_v all_o prophet_n be_v all_o teacher_n ●re_n all_o worker_n of_o miracle_n if_o one_o will_v study_v to_o ap●●y_a scripture_n impertinent_o i_o be_o persuade_v he_o can_v ●●rdly_o devise_v great_a impertinencye_n than_o these_o ●hich_v be_v so_o ri●e_v in_o every_o page_n of_o your_o book_n so_o that_o it_o be_v intolerable_a folly_n for_o your_o poet_n and_o paynter_n to_o represent_v this_o your_o voluminous_a cypher_v of_o scripture_n with_o a_o crown_n upon_o it_o bid_v man_n to_o beh●●●_n grace_n and_o wisdom_n in_o your_o look_n and_o truth_n triumph●●●_n your_o book_n for_o if_o this_o kind_n of_o cypher_v of_o scripture_n be_v wisdom_n what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o last_o extreme_a an●_n nonplus_n of_o folly_n of_o i_o wonder_v you_o will_v not_o be_v warn_v to_o be_v more_o wise_a by_o the_o book_n of_o quaeres_fw-la or_o prurit-anus_a for_o you_o cite_v the_o scripture_n as_o impertinent_o in_o good_a earnest_n as_o he_o do_v in_o jest_n to_o show_v your_o ministerial_a folly_n folly_n you_o cite_v &_o cypher_n scripture_n that_o make_v against_o you_o §._o 8._o hereunto_o i_o add_v that_o the_o text_n you_o cypher_n many_o time_n make_v against_o you_o pag._n 548._o lin_v 19_o to_o prove_v that_o reward_n be_v give_v unto_o work_n of_o gra●●_n and_o bounty_n aswell_o as_o of_o desert_n you_o cypher_n rom._n 4_o 4._o which_o say_v to_o he_o that_o work_v the_o reward_n be_v not_o reckon_v of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n can_v any_o text_n be_v devise_v more_o direct_o against_o the_o purpose_n you_o cite_v it_o for_o by_o this_o place_n join_v with_o a_o sentence_n of_o you_o i_o conclude_v unanswerable_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o merit_n the_o reward_n which_o be_v give_v to_o he_o that_o work_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n of_o his_o work_n be_v give_v not_o of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n but_o eternal_a life_n be_v term_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n because_o it_o be_v bestow_v 〈◊〉_d they_o which_o exercise_n righteousness_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o th●_n righteousness_n the_o true_a inherent_a dignity_n sanctity_n and_o purity_n of_o their_o work_n ergo_fw-la eternal_a life_n be_v a_o reward_n o●_n good_a work_v give_v to_o god_n child_n of_o debt_n not_o 〈◊〉_d mere_a grace_n and_o bounty_n the_o mayor_n be_v s._n paul_n by_o you_o cypher_v in_o this_o place_n the_o minor_a your_o ow_v in_o so_o many_o word_n pag._n 174._o in_o fine_a and_o 1●9_n so_o th●●_n the_o text_n of_o scripture_n by_o you_o cite_v prove_v invinci●bly_o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n against_o which_o you_o cite_v i●_n pag._n 558._o lin_v 4._o to_o prove_v that_o live_a saint_n have_v no_o communion_n with_o saint_n defunct_a by_o partake_v the_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n you_o cyte_v rom._n 12._o v._n 4._o we_o have_v many_o member_n in_o one_o body_n and_o every_o member_n have_v ●ot_n the_o same_o office_n this_o text_n prove_v the_o contrary_a to_o ●hat_n you_o intend_v to_o wit_n that_o satisfaction_n be_v communicable_a betwixt_o saint_n for_o from_o this_o text_n i_o argue_v thus_o if_o saint_n live_v &_o saint_n decease_v be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n have_v different_a office_n than_o ●here_o must_v be_v betwixt_o they_o communion_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o superabound_v in_o some_o member_n and_o be_v nee●ed_v of_o other_o for_o this_o we_o see_v to_o be_v that_o fellowship_n which_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o nature_n the_o member_n of_o ●he_n same_o body_n ought_v to_o enjoy_v the_o one_o with_o the_o o●her_n but_o the_o myrrh_n of_o mortification_n and_o satisfaction_n superabound_v in_o many_o most_o rare_a innocent_a and_o penitent_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o be_v no_o less_o need_v of_o diverse_a other_o saint_n upon_o the_o earth_n that_o have_v do_v many_o sin_n and_o can_v do_v such_o great_a penance_n therefore_o the_o myrrh_n of_o superabounding_a penance_n and_o satisfaction_n aught_o to_o flow_v down_o from_o decease_a saint_n in_o heaven_n unto_o their_o fellow-member_n the_o needy_a saint_n that_o live_v on_o earth_n the_o jesuite_n 523._o jesuite_n see_v the_o reply_n pag._n 523._o say_v that_o the_o first_o precept_n thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o lord_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o hart_n etc._n etc._n bind_v not_o man_n to_o love_n god_n in_o this_o life_n with_o beatifical_a love_n nor_o to_o be_v always_o in_o actual_a employment_n of_o his_o love_n on_o he_o but_o only_o to_o love_v sincere_o and_o inward_o to_o the_o keep_n of_o all_o commandment_n without_o any_o mortal_a offence_n which_o break_v friendship_n with_o god_n desire_v though_o not_o enjoy_v the_o happiness_n of_o beatifical_a love_n this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o s._n bernard_n and_o s._n augustine_n when_o they_o say_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o next_o life_n be_v contain_v in_o this_o precept_n to_o wit_n in_o voto_fw-la not_o in_o re_fw-mi this_o doctrine_n you_o impugn_v pag._n 525._o lin_v 26._o saying_n that_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v observe_v other_o commandment_n break_v the_o first_o commandment_n and_o do_v undergo_v corporal_a pain_n after_o the_o breach_n thereof_o how_o prove_v you_o this_o marry_o you_o cypher_n heb._n 11.31_o they_o be_v stone_v they_o be_v sawen_v a_o sunder_o they_o be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n do_v this_o text_n prove_v the_o saint_n transgress_v the_o first_o commandment_n that_o they_o be_v corporal_o afflict_v for_o their_o not_o love_v god_n with_o all_o their_o hart_n do_v it_o not_o rather_o show_v the_o contrary_a that_o they_o love_v god_n perfect_o and_o be_v temporal_o torment_v because_o they_o so_o love_v he_o with_o all_o their_o hart_n that_o they_o will_v rather_o undergo_v most_o cruel_a and_o barbarous_a death_n then_o offend_v he_o or_o abandon_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v as_o our_o saviour_n say_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o charity_n pag._n 10._o lin_v 20._o you_o deny_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o her_o tradition_n and_o definition_n yet_o say_v you_o we_o acknowledge_v her_o lawful_a authority_n for_o expound_v scripture_n and_o maintain_v unity_n in_o right_a faith_n in_o proof_n hereof_o you_o cite_v matth._n 18.17_o who_o so_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n you_o can_v not_o have_v invent_v a_o text_n that_o do_v more_o invincible_o show_v the_o contrary_a of_o what_o you_o intend_v let_v we_o make_v this_o text_n of_o scripture_n the_o mayor_n and_o your_o protestant_a doctrine_n the_o minor_a and_o put_v your_o argument_n in_o form_n then_o will_v you_o see_v how_o handsome_o you_o prove_v that_o you_o acknowledge_v all_o the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o scripture_n say_v the_o church_n be_v of_o so_o great_a &_o absolute_a &_o infallible_a authority_n that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o hear_v she_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n protestant_n say_v the_o church_n be_v so_o subject_a to_o
with_o scripture_n in_o so_o many_o main_n article_n of_o controversy_n about_o faith_n whereof_o some_o as_o you_o 106._o you_o pag._n 106._o confess_v be_v only_o implicate_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o must_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n and_o deduction_n be_v thence_o wring_v out_o final_o the_o beroean_n read_v the_o scripture_n only_o for_o their_o great_a cofirmation_n in_o faith_n in_o case_n they_o shall_v find_v by_o their_o private_a read_n the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n they_o read_v not_o by_o way_n of_o doubtful_a examination_n that_o be_v with_o purpose_v not_o to_o believe_v s._n paul_n if_o so_o they_o shall_v not_o find_v the_o scripture_n to_o yield_v plain_a testimony_n unto_o his_o doctrine_n that_o they_o read_v not_o in_o this_o manner_n be_v clear_a for_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o before_o they_o search_v the_o scripture_n they_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o all_o alacrity_n and_o readiness_n of_o mind_n but_o if_o they_o have_v be_v doubtful_a of_o s._n paul_n doctrine_n &_o have_v to_o clear_a that_o doubt_n go_v to_o search_v the_o scripture_n it_o can_v not_o have_v be_v true_o say_v of_o they_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o alacrity_n and_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n and_o afterward_o search_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o search_v scripture_n by_o way_n of_o doubtful_a examination_n but_o with_o full_a resolution_n to_o believe_v s._n paul_n doctrine_n even_o in_o case_n they_o shall_v not_o find_v by_o their_o private_a industry_n the_o same_o clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n how_o then_o may_v you_o by_o this_o example_n make_v good_a your_o protestant_a doctrine_n that_o unlearned_a people_n may_v compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o scripture_n in_o doubt_v manner_n that_o be_v with_o intention_n not_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n in_o case_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o discover_v her_o doctrine_n by_o private_a read_n in_o their_o vulgar_a bible_n or_o in_o case_n that_o in_o the_o seem_n of_o their_o private_a judgement_n the_o scripture_n shall_v appear_v as_o opposite_a unto_o the_o church_n the_o text_n 1._o john_n 1.8_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n etc._n etc._n falsify_v whereas_o the_o jesuit_n pag_n 550._o say_v out_o of_o s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n augustine_n that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n never_o commit_v actual_a sin_n you_o pag._n 551._o reply_v it_o be_v a_o manifest_a untruth_n for_o s._n john_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n say_v 1._o john_n 1.8_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o us._n and_o vers_fw-la 10._o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v not_o sin_v we_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n and_o his_o word_n be_v not_o in_o us._n and_o pag._n 517._o much_o more_o bitter_o thus_o you_o write_v to_o this_o purpose_n if_o our_o adversary_n will_v be_v so_o graceless_a as_o to_o make_v any_o man_n in_o this_o life_n except_o the_o holy_a of_o the_o holye_n 1._o petr._n 2.22_o free_a from_o sin_n the_o apostle_n enroll_v he_o in_o the_o black_a book_n of_o damnable_a liar_n 1._o john_n 1.10_o and_o they_o may_v with_o acesius_n the_o novatian_a borrow_v a_o ladder_n and_o so_o climb_v up_o alone_o to_o heaven_n yea_o rather_o fall_v to_o hell_n for_o who_o be_v more_o desperate_o sick_a quàm_fw-la qui_fw-la mentem_fw-la febribus_fw-la perdiderunt_fw-la than_o they_o which_o by_o the_o fever_n of_o pride_n have_v lose_v the_o understanding_n of_o their_o sinful_a condition_n thus_o you_o which_o you_o can_v deny_v to_o be_v bitter_a in_o excess_n what_o be_v the_o jesuit_n fault_n no_o other_o but_o this_o he_o say_v that_o not_o only_a christ_n jesus_n the_o holy_a of_o the_o holye_n be_v by_o nature_n &_o hypostatical_a union_n impeccable_a but_o also_o ecclesia_fw-la also_o council_n trident_n sess_v 6._o can_n 23._o sicut_fw-la de_fw-la maria_n virgin_n tenet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la that_o his_o holy_a mother_n be_v pure_a from_o all_o actual_a sin_n by_o special_a grace_n and_o why_o be_v this_o so_o great_a and_o damnable_a a_o offence_n marry_o because_o s._n john_n say_v if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v not_o sin_v we_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n and_o this_o he_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o person_n of_o only_a ordinary_a saint_n but_o in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n even_o of_o saint_n as_o singular_o choose_v as_o the_o bless_a virgin_n this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o your_o bitterness_n but_o first_o though_o the_o scripture_n have_v say_v that_o all_o the_o elect_v commit_v actual_a sin_n yet_o perchance_o not_o without_o warrant_n we_o may_v except_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n but_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v herein_o against_o you_o show_v in_o god_n word_n this_o text_n all_o the_o elect_a have_v sin_v or_o this_o s._n john_n say_v in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o &_o the_o jesuit_n present_o yield_v what_o can_v you_o wish_v more_o but_o if_o in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n be_v as_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v your_o addition_n unto_o the_o text_n join_v therewith_o so_o cunning_o as_o it_o may_v seem_v the_o very_a letter_n of_o god_n word_n what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o you_o but_o only_o that_o your_o rail_n against_o we_o be_v not_o so_o bitter_a but_o your_o injury_n unto_o god_n word_n be_v great_a i_o add_v that_o to_o say_v s._n john_n speak_v the_o aforesaid_a word_n in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n not_o only_o be_v not_o the_o text_n but_o also_o against_o the_o text_n except_o we_o will_v make_v s._n john_n excessive_a in_o the_o conceit_n of_o himself_o for_o thus_o i_o argue_v it_o be_v manifest_a s._n john_n speak_v the_o word_n aforesaid_a in_o the_o person_n of_o such_o saint_n in_o the_o number_n of_o which_o he_o rank_v himself_o if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o sin_n but_o s._n john_n can_v not_o without_o pride_n rank_n himself_o in_o the_o number_n of_o saint_n as_o singular_o choose_v as_o be_v the_o glorious_a virgin_n so_o that_o if_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o say_n be_v if_o we_o that_o be_v saint_n as_o singular_o privilege_v as_o god_n bless_a mother_n say_v we_o have_v not_o sin_v we_o deceive_v ourselves_o what_o can_v be_v more_o arrogant_a luther_n illa_fw-la luther_n luther_n serm._n de_fw-fr nativit_fw-la mariae_fw-la sumus_fw-la pares_fw-la matri_fw-la dei_fw-la ac_fw-la aequè_fw-la sancti_fw-la sicut_fw-la illa_fw-la indeed_o have_v leave_v behind_o he_o write_v we_o be_v all_o as_o holy_a as_o the_o virgin_n mary_n but_o that_o s._n john_n ever_o say_v it_o or_o think_v it_o the_o minister_n will_v never_o a_o able_a to_o prove_v so_o that_o without_o any_o question_n as_o also_o the_o 95._o the_o s._n augustin_n the_o nat_n &_o great_a c._n 42._o &_o &_o 60._o &_o epist._n 95._o father_n note_n s._n john_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n only_o of_o all_o common_a holy_a christian_n among_o who_o he_o may_v without_o pride_n number_v himself_o as_o for_o your_o reproach_n so_o many_o &_o so_o bitter_a for_o two_o reason_n you_o be_v to_o be_v pity_v first_o for_o that_o your_o passion_n against_o the_o jesuit_n be_v either_o so_o blind_a as_o you_o see_v not_o what_o lie_v before_o you_o or_o so_o fierce_a as_o not_o to_o spare_v he_o you_o let_v contumelious_a term_n fly_v that_o must_v light_v on_o the_o head_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n for_o this_o be_v your_o censure_n they_o that_o hold_v any_o except_o the_o holy_a of_o the_o holye_n to_o have_v be_v free_a from_o actual_a sin_n be_v graceless_a &_o be_v by_o s._n john_n enroll_v in_o the_o black_a book_n of_o damnable_a liar_n mentem_fw-la febribus_fw-la perdiderunt_fw-la they_o have_v lose_v their_o wit_n by_o the_o frenzy_n of_o pride_n now_o under_o this_o your_o censure_n i_o subsume_v a_o know_v and_o undeniable_a truth_n but_o holy_a father_n exempt_v the_o bless_a virgin_n from_o actual_a sin_n not_o only_a s._n assumpt_n s._n serm._n 2._o the_o assumpt_n bernard_n s._n 3._o s._n de_fw-fr excellent_a b._n virg._n c._n 3._o anselme_n but_o also_o s._n epict._n s._n epist._n ad_fw-la epict._n athanasius_n s._n reg._n s._n in_o cap._n 1._o reg._n gregory_n s._n 118._o s._n ser._n 22._o in_o psal._n 118._o ambrose_n yea_o s._n augustine_n 36._o augustine_n de_fw-fr nat._n &_o grat._n c._n 36._o who_o thus_o speak_v for_o they_o all_o in_o matter_n of_o sin_n no_o mention_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n she_o be_v not_o include_v in_o the_o general_a sentence_n of_o that_o kind_n scimus_fw-la enim_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o we_o know_v we_o be_v certain_a that_o unto_o she_o singular_a grace_n be_v give_v to_o conquer_v
sin_n every_o way_n what_o be_v hence_o consequent_a that_o except_o you_o recall_v your_o censure_n you_o must_v censure_v the_o father_n as_o graceless_a damnable_a liar_n frantic_a fool_n so_o great_a be_v your_o passion_n and_o so_o small_a your_o judgement_n in_o rail_v at_o the_o jesuit_n second_o you_o be_v to_o be_v pity_v in_o regard_n your_o passion_n be_v so_o extreme_a as_o you_o can_v join_v together_o the_o part_n of_o your_o discourse_n in_o any_o sensible_a manner_n you_o say_v that_o the_o jesuit_n hold_v the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v immaculate_a and_o pure_a from_o actual_a sin_n be_v like_a to_o acesius_n the_o novatian_a who_o think_v himself_o pure_a and_o innocent_a and_o deny_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n unto_o man_n that_o sin_v after_o baptism_n so_o leave_v no_o ladder_n to_o climb_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o only_o that_o of_o innocency_n what_o can_v be_v more_o inept_v then_o to_o lay_v this_o censure_n on_o the_o jesuite_n in_o that_o respect_n if_o the_o jesuite_n hold_v the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o have_v be_v ever_o free_a from_o actual_a sin_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o must_v also_o so_o esteem_v of_o himself_o as_o do_v the_o novatian_a may_v he_o not_o judge_v she_o to_o be_v a_o immaculate_a virgin_n and_o yet_o himself_o a_o sinful_a man_n crave_v pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n by_o her_o prayer_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o fond_a also_o as_o to_o think_v himself_o unspotted_a &_o pure_a from_o sin_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o must_v needs_o with_o acesius_n exclude_v from_o salvation_n all_o penitent_a sinner_n &_o allow_v no_o ladder_n unto_o heaven_n but_o only_o that_o of_o purity_n take_v away_o the_o other_o of_o penance_n sure_o you_o can_v but_o see_v this_o your_o inuective_n to_o be_v not_o only_o wrongful_a but_o also_o witless_a the_o same_o distemper_n of_o passion_n cause_v you_o not_o to_o mark_v the_o want_n of_o coherence_n betwixt_o your_o textuall_a assertion_n and_o marginal_a proof_n in_o your_o text_n you_o say_v the_o jesuit_n by_o say_v the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v pure_a from_o sin_n have_v lose_v his_o wit_n by_o the_o fever_n of_o pride_n in_o proof_n hereof_o you_o cite_v in_o your_o margin_n this_o sentence_n of_o s._n cyprian_n quisquis_fw-la se_fw-la inculpatum_fw-la dixerit_fw-la aut_fw-la superbus_fw-la aut_fw-la stultus_fw-la est_fw-la who_o so_o do_v say_v that_o himself_o be_v without_o sin_n be_v either_o proud_a or_o a_o fool_n do_v you_o not_o yet_o perceive_v the_o wonderful_a impertinency_n of_o this_o proof_n let_v the_o same_o be_v put_v into_o form_n &_o then_o you_o will_v perchance_o present_o feel_v it_o whosoever_o say_v that_o himself_o be_v without_o sin_n be_v a_o proud_a fool_n the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n be_v without_o sin_n ergo_fw-la the_o jesuit_n be_v a_o proud_a fool_n very_o the_o jesuit_n be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o fool_n as_o he_o who_o do_v not_o perceive_v the_o folly_n of_o this_o argue_v which_o be_v just_a as_o good_a as_o this_o who_o so_o think_v himself_o the_o holy_a &_o learn_a divine_a of_o this_o age_n be_v a_o very_a fool_n but_o francis_n white_n think_v john_n caluin_n the_o holy_a and_o learn_a divine_a of_o this_o age_n ergo_fw-la francis_n white_n be_v a_o very_a fool_n suppose_v you_o be_v thus_o conceited_a of_o caluin_n and_o some_o catholic_a divine_a shall_v thus_o come_v upon_o you_o for_o the_o same_o will_v not_o his_o folly_n seem_v prodigious_a unto_o all_o learned_a man_n other_o falsification_n i_o may_v yet_o further_o discover_v as_o pag._n 5._o lin_v 8._o where_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v always_o visible_a 16._o aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles._n c._n 16._o you_o bring_v the_o donatist_n objection_n the_o scripture_n foretell_v a_o large_a revolt_n from_o heavenly_a truth_n 2._o thessaly_n 2.2_o these_o word_n from_o heavenly_a truth_n be_v add_v to_o the_o text_n for_o the_o text_n only_o say_v first_o there_o shall_v come_v the_o defection_n or_o revolt_v which_o most_o expositor_n understand_v from_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o pag._n 519._o cite_v 1._o john_n 5.18_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o for_o the_o divine_a generation_n keep_v he_o and_o the_o wicked_a one_o touch_v he_o not_o you_o omit_v sin_v not_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o avouch_v what_o you_o so_o bitter_o rail_v against_o that_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n by_o special_a grace_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n likewise_o to_o reprove_v the_o jesuite_n doctrine_n that_o saint_n though_o they_o sin_v venial_o yet_o do_v not_o sin_n against_o the_o divine_a law_n for_o this_o law_n do_v exact_a thing_n of_o man_n no_o further_o than_o they_o be_v necessary_a unto_o eternal_a life_n but_o venial_a sin_n destroy_v or_o oppose_v nothing_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o eternal_a life_n against_o this_o doctrine_n you_o argue_v pag._n 522._o lin_v 20._o if_o just_a man_n have_v any_o sin_n they_o perform_v not_o all_o the_o divine_a law_n require_v for_o every_o sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n 1._o john_n 3.4_o here_o to_o the_o text_n of_o your_o english_a bible_n you_o add_v divine_a the_o text_n be_v every_o sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n or_o of_o a_o law_n and_o this_o sentence_n be_v true_a for_o though_o venial_a sin_n be_v not_o against_o the_o divine_a special_a law_n because_o they_o be_v not_o against_o charity_n and_o salvation_n yet_o they_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o reason_n which_o bind_v man_n as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v not_o to_o be_v forgetful_a &_o inconsiderate_a even_o in_o small_a matter_n and_o though_o some_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n recommend_v these_o small_a thing_n unto_o we_o it_o be_v only_o to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o what_o we_o be_v bind_v unto_o by_o the_o law_n of_o reason_n not_o to_o lay_v new_a divine_a obligation_n upon_o we_o many_o such_o other_o trick_n of_o your_o falsehood_n i_o omit_v to_o discover_v for_o brevitye_n sake_n ignorance_n fraud_n and_o falsehood_n in_o allege_v father_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o author_n sect_n v._o in_o this_o subject_n i_o may_v be_v large_a you_o be_v copious_a in_o your_o quotation_n whereof_o scarce_o one_o be_v to_o be_v find_v which_o be_v examine_v to_o the_o original_n be_v not_o either_o impertinent_a or_o wrest_v against_o the_o author_n mind_n or_o falsify_v by_o mistranslation_n in_o the_o very_a text_n which_o to_o discover_v full_o and_o particular_o be_v a_o hugh_o work_n and_o hardly_o worth_a the_o labour_n and_o no_o way_n necessary_a for_o even_o as_o to_o the_o end_n that_o one_o may_v know_v the_o sea_n to_o be_v salt_n it_o be_v not_o needful_a that_o he_o drink_v up_o the_o whole_a main_n two_o or_o three_o taste_n take_v here_o and_o there_o may_v sufficient_o resolve_v he_o of_o this_o truth_n so_o four_o or_o five_o example_n in_o every_o kind_n may_v more_o than_o abundant_o serve_v to_o make_v this_o your_o want_n of_o conscience_n know_v unto_o your_o unwary_a credent_n that_o they_o may_v see_v who_o they_o trust_v in_o a_o business_n that_o do_v so_o high_o import_v these_o your_o falsification_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n some_o crafty_a and_o subtle_a some_o gross_a and_o impudent_a crafty_a falsification_n be_v when_o to_o draw_v author_n to_o your_o purpose_n in_o your_o translation_n of_o their_o text_n you_o either_o add_v to_o it_o or_o detract_v from_o it_o some_o word_n or_o particle_n thereby_o change_v the_o sense_n or_o else_o cite_v their_o word_n true_o but_o contrary_a to_o their_o meaning_n gross_a falsification_n be_v when_o you_o lie_v doctrine_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o author_n which_o they_o reject_v even_o in_o the_o place_n by_o you_o cite_v both_o these_o kind_n of_o falsehood_n s._n paul_n do_v signify_v to_o be_v practise_v by_o heretic_n ephes._n 4_o 8._o where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v leave_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o the_o blast_n of_o every_o doctrine_n by_o the_o wiliness_n of_o man_n to_o circumvent_v weakling_n in_o error_n what_o be_v the_o blast_n of_o heretical_a doctrine_n but_o their_o violent_a and_o audacious_a falsifying_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n what_o their_o wiliness_n to_o circumvent_v in_o error_n but_o crafty_a corruption_n by_o steal_v away_o or_o cog_a in_o word_n in_o their_o produce_v of_o the_o monument_n of_o chistian_n antiquity_n the_o greek_a word_n use_v by_o s._n paul_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v proper_o cog_a of_o the_o dice_n or_o help_v the_o dice_n crafty_o to_o cast_v what_o chance_n they_o please_v even_o so_o heretic_n by_o help_v the_o you_o by_o cog_a word_n in_o &_o out_o of_o the_o text_n make_v
likeness_n and_o similitude_n confound_v ●he_n sight_n not_o to_o discern_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o in_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o so_o the_o doctrine_n propose_v therein_o be_v not_o gold_n mingle_v with_o earth_n but_o pure_a gold_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pure_a silver_n refine_a wilth_z fire_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o metal_n that_o require_v workman_n to_o sever_v in_o their_o doctrine_n dross_n from_o gold_n they_o offer_v a_o ready_a and_o refine_a treasure_n to_o they_o that_o seek_v the_o riches_n hide_v in_o they_o thus_o s._n chrysostome_n and_o he_o do_v there_o large_o discourse_n how_o every_o thing_n in_o scripture_n even_o the_o chronology_n and_o proper_a name_n of_o man_n do_v afford_v wholesome_a and_o profitable_a doctrine_n to_o the_o reader_n but_o to_o find_v this_o treasure_n we_o must_v not_o as_o he_o there_o say_v nudam_fw-la tantùm_fw-la scripturam_fw-la aspicere_fw-la sed_fw-la insistere_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la study_v repositas_fw-la scrutari_fw-la opes_fw-la not_o only_o look_v upon_o the_o scripture_n but_o insist_v &_o with_o study_n search_v out_o the_o riches_n hoard_v up_o therein_o have_v you_o not_o they_o notorious_o falsify_v the_o sense_n of_o his_o discourse_n by_o the_o insertion_n of_o word_n of_o your_o own_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o your_o protestant_a sole-sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n you_o cite_v saepe_fw-la cite_v pag._n 50._o in_o marg._n lit_fw-fr e._n &_o pag._n 3._o lin_v 6._o &_o in_o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr e._n &_o alibi_fw-la saepe_fw-la this_o sentence_n of_o durand_n term_v he_o a_o famous_a scholeman_n ecclesia_fw-la licèt_fw-la dei_fw-la dominationem_fw-la habeat_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la illa_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la excedit_fw-la limitationem_fw-la scripturae_fw-la although_o the_o church_n have_v the_o power_n &_o authority_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n yet_o that_o authority_n do_v not_o exceed_v the_o limitation_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o place_n be_v by_o you_o allege_v many_o time_n in_o this_o your_o reply_n but_o most_o impertinent_o for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o church_n though_o it_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n caelis_fw-la earth_n matth._n 16._o v_o 20._o quicquid_fw-la solueris_fw-la quicquid_fw-la ligaveris_fw-la super_fw-la terram_fw-la erit_fw-la solutum_fw-la &_o ligatum_fw-la in_o caelis_fw-la yet_o the_o same_o power_n be_v in_o some_o case_n restrain_v and_o limit_v by_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o church_n can_v dispense_v in_o many_o thing_n wherein_o god_n may_v dispense_v in_o infideles_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la licèt_fw-la habeat_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o tertio_fw-la illa_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la excedit_fw-la limitationem_fw-la scripturae_fw-la scriptura_fw-la autem_fw-la docet_fw-la express_v seruos_fw-la conversos_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la adhuc_fw-la manere_fw-la dominis_n suis_fw-la prioribus_fw-la licet_fw-la illi_fw-la maneant_fw-la infideles_fw-la particular_a she_o can_v say_v he_o exempt_a slave_n that_o be_v make_v christian_n from_o their_o subjection_n unto_o their_o old_a ma●sters_n because_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_o teach_v that_o slave_n convert_v unto_o the_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v still_o subject_a to_o their_o former_a master_n though_o their_o master_n be_v infidel_n thus_o durand_n now_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o prove_v that_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n except_o according_a to_o your_o skill_n in_o logic_n you_o will_v argue_v in_o this_o sort_n the_o church_n can_v do_v the_o thing_n forbid_v she_o in_o scripture_n because_o her_o power_n be_v not_o beyond_o the_o restraynt_n thereof_o give_v in_o the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la she_o can_v believe_v &_o teach_v doctrine_n propose_v unto_o she_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o tradition_n without_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n commend_v unto_o she_o in_o scripture_n hold_v the_o tradition_n you_o have_v whether_o by_o speech_n or_o by_o epistle_n 2._o thessaly_n 2.15_o how_o many_o time_n in_o this_o your_o reply_n have_v you_o cite_v this_o testimony_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n f._n sentence_n lombard_n l._n 4._o scent_n d._n 18._o light_v f._n god_n do_v not_o still_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o sometime_o through_o ignorance_n and_o surreption_n judge_v not_o according_a to_o truth_n this_o i_o say_v you_o cite_v alibi_fw-la cite_v see_v pag._n 89._o in_o lit_fw-fr ●_o &_o p._n 93._o light_v d_o &_o alibi_fw-la to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o faith_n at_o the_o least_o about_o secondary_a article_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o evident_a that_o he_o speakerh_fw-mi of_o judgement_n in_o criminal_a cause_n for_o hence_o he_o inferretth_v iudicat_fw-la inferretth_v soluere_fw-la noxios_fw-la vel_fw-la damnare_fw-la se_fw-la putant_fw-la innoxios_fw-la cùm_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la non_fw-la sententia_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la sed_fw-la reorum_fw-la vita_fw-la queratur_fw-la et_fw-la ita_fw-la apertè_fw-la ostenditur_fw-la quòd_fw-la non_fw-la semper_fw-la sequitur_fw-la deus_fw-la iudicium_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la ignorantiam_fw-la &_o surreptionem_fw-la interdum_fw-la iudicat_fw-la the_o churchman_n must_v not_o think_v because_o christ_n say_v unto_o they_o whatsoever_o you_o bound_v or_o loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v &_o loose_v in_o heaven_n that_o therefore_o they_o may_v condemn_v the_o innocent_a and_o absolve_v the_o nocent_a for_o god_n in_o such_o case_n do_v not_o follow_v their_o sentence_n but_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o life_n of_o the_o accuse_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v not_o ancient_o acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o say_v pag._n 161._o lin_v 15._o pope_n stephen_n be_v slight_v by_o s._n cyprian_a and_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n in_o proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v in_o your_o margin_n d._n margin_n ibid._n lit_fw-fr d._n these_o word_n of_o firmilian_a 75._o firmilian_a firmil_n apud_fw-la cyprian_n epist_n 75._o atque_fw-la ego_fw-la in_o ●ac_fw-la parte_fw-la just_a indignor_fw-la in_o tam_fw-la manifestam_fw-la &_o apertam_fw-la ste●hani_fw-la stultitiam_fw-la quòd_fw-la qui_fw-la sic_fw-la de_fw-fr episcopatus_fw-la svi_fw-la loco_fw-la gloria●ur_fw-la &_o se_fw-la successionem_fw-la petri_n tenere_fw-la contendit_fw-la and_o indeed_o i_o be_o just_o grieve_v against_o the_o open_a &_o manifest_a fol●y_n of_o stephen_n that_o he_o so_o much_o glori_v of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o bishopric_n and_o stand_v upon_o his_o have_v the_o succession_n of_o peter_n thus_o you_o now_o behold_v your_o falsehood_n for_o i_o omit_v your_o ignorance_n in_o name_v firmi●ian_n as_o a_o bishop_n of_o africa_n whereas_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n ●f_o the_o east_n to_o wit_n of_o episcopus_fw-la of_o euseb._n hist._n eccl._n l._n 6._o c._n 20._o caesareae_n capadocensis_n episcopus_fw-la caesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n your_o legier-de-maine_a i_o say_v and_o falsehood_n be_v twofold_a first_o you_o omit_v to_o let_v your_o reader_n know_v that_o this_o firmilian_a when_o he_o write_v this_o epistle_n be_v a_o quarta●eciman_n and_o also_o addict_v to_o the_o error_n of_o rebapti●ing_v they_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n and_o because_o s._n stephen_n a_o most_o 9_o most_o vincent_n lyrinensis_n adversus_fw-la haeres_fw-la cap._n 9_o holy_a pope_n &_o martyr_n have_v make_v a_o decree_n against_o their_o novelty_n 74._o novelty_n cyprian_a epist_n 74._o nihil_fw-la innovamdum_fw-la prae●erquam_fw-la quod_fw-la traditum_fw-la let_v no_o novelty_n be_v admit_v ●ut_v let_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n be_v keep_v this_o firmilian_a write_v against_o he_o a_o epistle_n full_a of_o sharp_a &_o contumelious_a speech_n have_v you_o mention_v this_o quality_n of_o firmilian_a which_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o you_o know_v your_o impertinency_n will_v have_v be_v apparent_a for_o this_o suppose_a your_o argument_n go_v thus_o some_o bishop_n special_o firmilian_a err_v against_o faith_n and_o blast_v for_o the_o time_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o heresy_n write_v a_o contemptuous_a epistle_n against_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n ergo_fw-la the_o sea_n of_o peter_n be_v not_o by_o divine_a institution_n the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n all_o heresye_n shall_v rage_n but_o never_o prevail_v second_o you_o notorious_o falsify_v the_o sentence_n of_o firmilian_a in_o make_v he_o to_o rail_v against_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n for_o this_o even_o in_o that_o his_o heretical_a passion_n whereof_o he_o afterward_o be_v 7._o be_v this_o be_v testify_v by_o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n who_o then_o live_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o xistus_fw-la the_o successor_n of_o s._n stephen_n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 7._o histor._n c._n 3._o &_o niceph_n l._n 6._o c_o 7._o penitent_a he_o never_o do_v yea_o he_o do_v rather_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a bishop_n succession_n from_o peter_n and_o thence_o argue_v that_o see_v to_o peter_n only_o christ_n say_v to_o thou_o i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n
scripture_n say_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v divine_a yet_o shall_v i_o not_o certain_o believe_v it_o except_o i_o have_v aforehand_o believe_v the_o scripture_n which_o do_v 〈◊〉_d affirm_v to_o be_v divine_a for_o also_o in_o sundry_a place_n of_o maho●●ts_n alcoran_n we_o read_v that_o the_o same_o be_v send_v of_o god_n from_o hea●●●●_n yet_o do_v we_o not_o believe_v it_o be_v there_o no_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o say_n a_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n affirm_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o be_v divine_a 〈◊〉_d then_o the_o alcoran_n and_o this_o i_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n say_v the_o book_n of_o prophet_n be_v divine_a except_o i_o 〈◊〉_d believe_v the_o scripture_n that_o so_o say_v very_o they_o differ_v 〈◊〉_d much_o as_o hell_n and_o heaven_n as_o blasphemy_n and_o truth_n with_o hosius_n you_o join_v petrus_n soto_n to_o be_v a_o debase_a 〈◊〉_d scripture_n a._n scripture_n pag._n 152._o in_o lit_fw-fr a._n cite_v these_o word_n as_o he_o 25._o he_o petrus_n soto_n ●nstructio_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la part._n 1._o lect_n 6._o pag._n 17._o if_o he_o be_v true_o cite_v for_o in_o my_o edition_n it_o be_v pag._n 25._o quae_fw-la 〈◊〉_d cultum_fw-la pertinent_a magis_fw-la ex_fw-la traditione_n &_o spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la ●●●ustratione_fw-la quàm_fw-la ex_fw-la scriptura_fw-la petenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la the_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d belong_v unto_o worship_n be_v to_o be_v take_v by_o tradition_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rather_o than_o from_o 〈◊〉_d scripture_n thus_o you_o omit_v and_o put_v in_o ●●ordes_n chap_a and_o change_v the_o text._n let_v we_o ●●are_n the_o author_n very_a word_n pertinent_a word_n aduer●ant_fw-la hunc_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la euangelicae_fw-la modum_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la rationem_fw-la attinet_fw-la post_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la communia_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnibus_fw-la qualia_fw-la sunt_fw-la praecepta_fw-la decalogi_fw-la atque_fw-la dilectionis_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o proximi_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la christus_fw-la frequenter_a loquor_fw-la post_fw-la haec_fw-la inquam_fw-la omne_fw-la adver●ant_fw-la plura_fw-la esse_fw-la quaerenda_fw-la extraditione_fw-la &_o illustratione_fw-la spiritùs_fw-la sancti_fw-la potiùs_fw-la quàm_fw-la ex_fw-la scriptura_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la cultum_fw-la pertinent_a post_fw-la haec_fw-la omne_fw-la ●●uertant_fw-la plura_fw-la quaerenda_fw-la esse_fw-la ex_fw-la traditione_n &_o illustra●●one_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la quàm_fw-la ex_fw-la scripture_n praecipuè_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la ●●ltum_fw-la pertinent_a after_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v after_o a_o ●riest_n know_v not_o only_o the_o article_n and_o mystery_n of_o ●ayth_n but_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n and_o good_a life_n 〈◊〉_d communia_fw-la omnibus_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la christus_fw-la frequenter_a lo●●itur_fw-la those_o thing_n that_o be_v common_o to_o be_v keep_v 〈◊〉_d all_o christian_n as_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o 〈◊〉_d like_a about_o which_o christ_n do_v frequent_o speak_v ●fter_o they_o know_v these_o thing_n let_v they_o remember_v that_o more_o ●●ings_n yet_o be_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o rather_o by_o tradition_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d ghost_n illumination_n then_o by_o the_o scripture_n sp●cially_o 〈◊〉_d thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o reverence_n in_o these_o word_n petrus_a soto_n deliver_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o thing_n concern_v matter_n not_o only_o of_o faith_n but_o also_o of_o good_a life_n that_o be_v common_a and_o must_v be_v know_v of_o all_o christian_n be_v large_o deliver_v in_o holy_a scripture_n second_o that_o post_fw-la haec_fw-la omne_fw-la after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o these_o common_a substantial_a matter_n 〈◊〉_d for_o other_o particular_a thing_n they_o be_v to_o be_v learn_v by_o tradition_n more_o than_o by_o scripture_n hence_o i_o infer_v that_o petrus_n soto_n by_o the_o word_n quae_fw-la ad_fw-la cultum_fw-la pertinent_a do_v not_o mean_v the_o main_n duty_n of_o latriae_fw-la and_o religion_n but_o reverential_a carriage_n and_o ceremony_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v clear_a for_o by_o thing_n pertinent_a unto_o reverence_n he_o mean_v thing_n that_o be_v not_o common_a unto_o all_o nor_o to_o be_v know_v and_o observe_v of_o all_o but_o the_o main_n duty_n of_o latria_n &_o religion_n be_v common_a unto_o all_o christian_n therefore_o soto_n do_v not_o mean_v they_o in_o his_o word_n quae_fw-la ad_fw-la cultum_fw-la pertinent_a but_o only_a thing_n of_o ceremonial_a reverence_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n as_o the_o author_n 26._o author_n quae_fw-la autem_fw-la in_o celebratione_fw-la baptismatis_fw-la &_o qua_fw-la ratione_fw-la agenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la ubi_fw-la est_fw-la scriptum_fw-la credendúmne_fw-la est_fw-la tantum_fw-la ministerium_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la praeparatione_fw-la solemnitate_fw-la &_o ritv_n quae_fw-la ad_fw-la eius_fw-la excitant_fw-la venerationem_fw-la traditum_fw-la esse_fw-la ibid._n pag._n 26._o do_v also_o in_o that_o place_n declare_v so_o that_o it_o be_v in_o you_o wonderful_a boldness_n by_o so_o many_o leave_n out_o by_o so_o many_o altering_n and_o transposing_n of_o word_n to_o change_v sotus_n his_o meaning_n as_o though_o he_o have_v be_v besot_v with_o swenckfeldian_a fancy_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n without_o scripture_n in_o your_o reply_n to_o the_o preface_n preface_n preface_n these_o leaf_n want_v number_n but_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sixth_o leaf_n the_o first_o side_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reply_n to_o the_o preface_n you_o say_v th●●_n the_o roman_a church_n do_v require_v that_o protestant_n send_v the_o holy_a scripture_n pack_v and_o not_o reckon_v the_o same_o among_o d●●uine_a principle_n to_o make_v this_o slander_n good_a you_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o margin_n church_n margin_n have_v bosius_n speak_v inconsiderat_o what_o folly_n or_o impotent_a malice_n be_v it_o to_o urge_v the_o unaduised_a speech_n of_o a_o private_a writer_n as_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n bosius_n the_o sig_n eccles._n lib._n 16._o cap._n 10._o scriptura_fw-la non_fw-la refertur_fw-la inter_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la principia_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v not_o reckon_v among_o these_o principle_n 〈◊〉_d wit_n divine_a this_o say_n of_o bosius_n you_o repeat_v over_o &_o over_o in_o your_o book_n yea_o the_o same_o be_v twice_o repeat_v in_o your_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n preface_n in_o your_o orthodox_n you_o have_v it_o also_o and_o your_o 1●1_n your_o defence_n pag._n 1●1_n brother_n more_o often_o as_o though_o bosius_n do_v say_v the_o scripture_n be_v not_o divine_a but_o your_o slander_n be_v intolerable_a for_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o reckon_v among_o divine_a principle_n but_o only_o not_o among_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n his_o word_n be_v we_o know_v that_o among_o other_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n one_o be_v i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n now_o these_o article_n be_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a principle_n which_o must_v be_v know_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o first_o place_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o number_v among_o these_o principle_n although_o it_o be_v name_v holy_a and_o sacred_a hence_o appear_v how_o notorious_o you_o slander_n and_o falsify_v bosius_n by_o make_v he_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o number_v among_o divine_a principle_n first_o because_o he_o say_v not_o they_o be_v not_o number_v among_o divine_a principle_n but_o only_o not_o among_o the_o twelve_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v a_o truth_n so_o manifest_a as_o minister_n can_v be_v ignorant_a thereof_o if_o they_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o creed_n second_o because_o in_o that_o very_a place_n and_o sentence_n he_o do_v affirm_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v holy_a and_o sacred_a what_o be_v this_o but_o divine_a very_o this_o accusation_n that_o protestant_n if_o they_o will_v be_v catholic_n must_v send_v the_o scripture_n pack_v be_v as_o true_a as_o what_o you_o 19_o you_o answer_v to_o the_o preface_n fol._n 6._o pag._n 1._o lin_v 19_o there_o also_o affirm_v that_o they_o must_v let_v the_o roman_a nahash_n pluck_v out_o their_o right_a eye_n and_o vow_v blind_a obedience_n unto_o he_o which_o you_o prove_v because_o bonaventure_n 5._o bonaventure_n in_o vit●_n francisci_fw-la c._n 5._o say_v that_o s._n francis_n exhort_v his_o friar_n unto_o blind_a obedience_n as_o though_o protestant_n may_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o roman_a church_n except_o they_o will_v be_v friar_n or_o that_o by_o religious_a obedience_n man_n put_v out_o their_o right_a eye_n which_o regard_v god_n and_o heaven_n and_o not_o tather_v the_o left_a which_o look_v upon_o earth_n and_o worldly_a pleasure_n have_v you_o either_o the_o right_a or_o leave_v eye_n of_o wisdom_n you_o will_v not_o write_v as_o you_o do_v have_v you_o any_o spark_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n you_o will_v not_o vent_v such_o false_a &_o odious_a slander_n have_v you_o any_o dram_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n you_o
arbitramur_fw-la 14._o baron_fw-fr a_o 1089._o n._n 11._o non_fw-la eos_fw-la homicidas_fw-la arbitramur_fw-la it_o be_v monstrous_a doctrine_n which_o be_v hatch_v by_o pope_n vrban_n and_o approve_a 〈◊〉_d baronius_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v murderer_n ●hich_v slay_v excommunicate_a person_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v ●ope_n vrban_n and_o baronius_n affirm_v that_o to_o murder_v ●ny_a way_n any_o excommunicate_a person_n be_v no_o sin_n ●ut_v your_o slander_n will_v seem_v monstrous_a when_o their_o doctrine_n according_a to_o truth_n be_v set_v down_o this_o it_o be_v certain_a cleargyman_n and_o schismatical_a priest_n of_o ●ewd_a and_o dissolute_a life_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o church_n do_v against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n take_v arm_n and_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o field_n saxony_n field_n in_o a_o battle_n fight_v betwixt_o henry_n emperor_n &_o egbert_n marquesse_n of_o saxony_n as_o man_n may_v just_o be_v in_o lawful_a war_n now_o because_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n censure_v such_o as_o strike_v cleargyman_n they_o that_o kill_v these_o wicked_a &_o seditious_a priest_n in_o the_o field_n have_v a_o scruple_n and_o demand_v absolution_n and_o penance_n of_o their_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n write_v of_o the_o matter_n to_o pope_n vrban_n who_o answer_v 54._o answer_v iuo_o part_n 10._o c._n 54._o that_o although_o he_o do_v not_o judge_v those_o that_o thus_o have_v kill_v such_o excommunicate_a person_n in_o the_o battle_n to_o be_v murderer_n yet_o that_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v keep_v &_o also_o because_o such_o as_o kill_v they_o though_o the_o fact_n be_v lawful_a may_v have_v have_v some_o sinister_a and_o insincere_a intention_n therein_o as_o do_v it_o out_o of_o private_a enmity_n that_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n iniunge_n bishop_n secundun_v intentionem_fw-la eorum_fw-la modum_fw-la congruae_fw-la satisfactionis_fw-la iniunge_n shall_v according_a to_o their_o intention_n &_o desire_n enjoin_v they_o a_o measure_n of_o congruous_a penance_n hence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n to_o kill_v any_o excommunicate_a person_n even_o priest_n when_o they_o be_v invader_n of_o our_o life_n and_o in_o just_a war_n but_o universal_o that_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n to_o kill_v any_o excommunicate_a person_n what_o way_n soever_o be_v not_o pope_n urban_n monstrous_a doctrine_n but_o a_o monster_n of_o your_o protestant_a slander_v out_o of_o a_o monstrous_a desire_n you_o have_v to_o delude_v and_o enrage_v man_n with_o lie_n against_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o same_o page_n 114._o lin_v 29._o you_o thus_o write_v of_o baronius_n 14._o baronius_n baron_fw-fr anno_fw-la 1106._o n._n 14._o cardinal_n baronius_n commend_v to_o the_o sky_n young_a henry_n the_o emperor_n son_n for_o rebel_a against_o his_o natural_a father_n for_o depose_v imprison_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o with_o sorrow_n to_o the_o grave_n what_o turk_n or_o savage_a will_v be_v the_o encomiast_n of_o such_o unnatural_a and_o enormous_a villainy_n thus_o you_o let_v the_o truth_n be_v examine_v and_o then_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o baronius_n his_o commendation_n ●f_o young_a henry_n be_v not_o to_o the_o sky_n but_o your_o slander_v of_o baronius_n come_v from_o as_o low_a as_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n ●irst_n it_o be_v false_a according_a to_o truth_n of_o the_o history_n that_o henry_n the_o four_o emperor_n die_v of_o sorrow_n in_o the_o ●estraynt_n which_o he_o have_v lay_v upon_o he_o by_o his_o son_n matter_n son_n see_v baronius_n ibid._n and_o all_o other_o historian_n that_o write_v of_o these_o matter_n nay_o he_o be_v in_o that_o durance_n use_v with_o such_o mildness_n and_o liberty_n as_o he_o easy_o get_v away_o gattered_a for●es_n and_o invade_v his_o son_n who_o by_o his_o own_o con●ent_n and_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o all_o the_o electour_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v be_v make_v &_o crown_a emperor_n this_o be_v your_o first_o untruth_n that_o baronius●rayseth_v ●rayseth_z that_o imprison_n of_o the_o father_n wherein_o he_o ●as_v bring_v with_o sorrow_n to_o his_o grave_n by_o his_o son_n second_o baronius_n do_v not_o commend_v young_a henry_n at_o all_o for_o that_o fact_n but_o only_o speak_v conditional_o and_o on_o both_o side_n no_o more_o in_o his_o praise_n ●en_o his_o dispraise_n for_o have_v set_v down_o the_o letter_n which_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o elder_a now_o be_v at_o ●●berty_n write_v full_a of_o complaint_n against_o his_o son_n ●aronius_a thus_o turn_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o reader_n if_o 46._o if_o baron_fw-fr tom._n 12._o pag._n 46._o ●hou_n sit_v arbiter_n betwixt_o the_o father_n &_o the_o son_n as_o for_o ●he_n son_n procure_v his_o father_n restraynt_n and_o deposition_n ●rom_o the_o empire_n by_o the_o peer_n and_o prince_n thereof_o the_o ●onne_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v if_o as_o he_o pretend_v he_o ●id_v this_o sincere_o out_o of_o praestitit_fw-la of_o si_fw-mi verè_fw-la pietatis_fw-la intuitu_fw-la prout_fw-la prae_fw-la se_fw-la tulit_fw-la ea_fw-la omne_fw-la praestitit_fw-la piety_n to_o bring_v his_o father_n unto_o a_o better_a mind_n and_o to_o make_v he_o seek_v to_o be_v absolve_v from_o excommunication_n wherewith_o he_o have_v be_v so_o many_o ●●mes_v tie_v and_o chain_v on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o as_o his_o father_n complain_v he_o do_v those_o thing_n by_o wicked_a plot_n ●nd_v stratagem_n by_o perjury_n and_o break_v his_o oath_n give_v to_o ●is_n father_n very_o his_o deed_n can_v de_fw-fr praise_v 〈◊〉_d wonderful_a be_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n that_o this_o emperor_n ●●ould_v suffer_v the_o same_o persecution_n from_o his_o wicked_a son_n which_o he_o have_v by_o perpetual_a incorrigible_a hatred_n for_o many_o year_n together_o offer_v unto_o his_o spiritual_a father_n thus_o baronius_n hence_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o as_o baronius_n and_o bellarmine_n be_v great_a friend_n in_o their_o life_n so_o they_o be_v by_o you_o slander_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n after_o their_o death_n that_o bellarmine_n may_v seem_v turkish_a and_o guilty_a of_o propension_n to_o turkism_n you_o make_v he_o say_v the_o scripture_n affirm_v a_o thing_n be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v believe_v more_o than_o mahomet_n alcoran_n whereas_o he_o only_o say_v conditional_o i_o shall_v not_o firm_o believe_v the_o scripture_n affirm_v a_o thing_n do_v i_o not_o aforehand_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v divine_a as_o i_o do_v not_o the_o alcoran_n though_o it_o say_v of_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v of_o god_n even_o so_o to_o make_v baronius_n seem_v more_o savage_a than_o any_o turk_n whereas_o he_o say_v conditional_o if_o young_a henry_n do_v restrain_v his_o father_n sincere_o out_o of_o piety_n for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o father_n that_o he_o may_v return_v to_o the_o church_n be_v absolve_v of_o excommunication_n &_o afterward_o peaceable_o enjoy_v his_o empire_n this_o kind_n of_o severity_n be_v indeed_o piety_n you_o make_v the_o proposition_n absolute_a and_o make_v baronius_n say_v it_o be_v piety_n in_o the_o son_n to_o use_v cruelty_n to_o his_o father_n the_o reader_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v see_v the_o exorbitancy_n of_o this_o false_a deal_n i_o must_v needs_o add_v another_o falsification_n you_o c._n you_o pag._n 56._o in_o margin_n lit_fw-fr c._n use_v towards_o baronius_n accuse_v he_o as_o blasphemous_o extol_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o this_o say_n ●1_n say_n baron_fw-fr ann._n 373._o num_fw-la ●1_n ut_fw-la planè_fw-la appareat_fw-la ex_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la dependisse_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la fidei_fw-la decreta_fw-la sancire_fw-la &_o sancita_fw-la mutare_fw-la whence_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n to_z establish_z decree_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o recall_v the_o establish_v this_o you_o bring_v as_o if_o baronius_n have_v hold_v the_o pope_n may_v make_v and_o un-make_a decree_n about_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n make_v that_o to_o be_v truth_n which_o before_o be_v error_n and_o that_o error_n which_o before_o be_v truth_n so_o easy_o do_v you_o believe_v &_o charge_v any_o barbarous_a and_o inhuman_a conceit_n upon_o catholic_a author_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v consider_v attentive_o the_o antecedent_n &_o consequent_n of_o the_o place_n will_v see_v that_o baronius_n speak_v not_o of_o decree_n of_o faith_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v eternal_a and_o so_o immutable_a that_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o change_v they_o he_o be_v papa_n be_v decret_n d._n 40._o c._n 6._o si_fw-mi papa_n by_o catholic_a doctrine_n a_o heretic_n and_o to_o be_v depose_v but_o only_o of_o decree_n of_o faith_n about_o keep_v or_o deny_v communion_n unto_o person_n suspect_v of_o heresy_n in_o regard_n of_o doubtful_a proposition_n this_o will_v have_v appear_v have_v you_o cite_v the_o word_n of_o baronius_n that_o immediate_o follow_v this_o be_v his_o whole_a
sentence_n hence_o sit_fw-la hence_o baron_fw-fr tom._n 4._o pag._n 306._o decreta_fw-la sancita_fw-la mu●are_fw-la &_o decernere_fw-la quibuscum_fw-la à_fw-la reliqua_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la communicandum_fw-la sit_fw-la it_o may_v appear_v that_o it_o do_v depend_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n to_o establish_v decree_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o recall_v the_o establish_v and_o to_o decree_n with_o who_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o keep_v communion_n hence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o baronius_n speak_v of_o decree_n of_o faith_n declarative_n with_o who_o communion_n in_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v &_o that_o those_o be_v mutable_a as_o the_o church_n shall_v see_v cause_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n whereof_o we_o must_v know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n or_o heretic_n ocean_n heretic_n sic_fw-la verba_fw-la temperant_fw-la sic_fw-la ambigua_fw-la quaeque_fw-la concinnan_n ut_fw-la nostram_fw-la &_o adversariorum_fw-la confessionem_fw-la teneant_fw-la hieron_n epist_n ad_fw-la pammach_n &_o ocean_n as_o s._n hierome_n note_v to_o couch_v their_o error_n in_o such_o ambiguous_a word_n that_o take_v one_o way_n they_o sound_v heretical_o &_o another_o way_n they_o carry_v a_o catholic_a sense_n hence_o upon_o the_o arise_v of_o new_a heretic_n even_o the_o catholic_a father_n be_v sometime_o devise_v some_o communicate_v with_o some_o deny_v communion_n unto_o such_o dogmatizant_n the_o decision_n of_o these_o doubt_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n thereof_o in_o which_o case_n the_o church_n may_v change_v her_o decree_n for_o when_o there_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o think_v that_o such_o proposition_n be_v take_v by_o the_o author_n in_o the_o heretical_a sense_n decree_n be_v to_o be_v make_v that_o no_o communion_n be_v hold_v with_o they_o if_o afterward_o it_o appear_v by_o good_a proof_n that_o they_o mean_v the_o say_v proposition_n according_a to_o the_o catholic_a sense_n they_o may_v be_v receive_v by_o some_o latter_a decree_n and_o the_o former_a decree_n about_o avoid_v their_o communion_n may_v be_v repeal_v in_o this_o sense_n true_a be_v the_o say_n of_o s._n augustine_n 1._o augustine_n lib._n 5._o the_o baptism_n c._n 1._o that_o former_a counsel_n be_v reform_v by_o late_a when_o by_o experiment_n of_o thing_n what_o before_o be_v hide_v come_v to_o light_v in_o this_o sort_n ancient_a counsel_n 19_o counsel_n in_o concilio_fw-la ephes._n christiparae_n nomen_fw-la explosum_fw-la est_fw-la canis_fw-la de_fw-fr b._n virg._n l._n 3._o c._n 19_o make_v this_o decree_n of_o faith_n that_o none_o shall_v term_v the_o most_o bless_a virgin_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d christ_n mother_n because_o by_o that_o title_n heretic_n do_v mean_a tacit_o to_o imply_v that_o she_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n mother_n and_o yet_o this_o decree_n of_o faith_n be_v now_o by_o custom_n repeal_v because_o it_o now_o appear_v that_o such_o as_o term_v her_o christ_n mother_n mean_v not_o thereby_o to_o deny_v that_o she_o be_v true_o and_o very_o god_n mother_n this_o be_v that_o which_o baronius_n say_v for_o speak_v of_o the_o apollinarian_o who_o do_v utter_v their_o error_n origen_n error_n ruffin_n de_fw-fr adulterate_a libror_fw-la origen_n in_o doubtful_a word_n he_o say_v that_o first_o by_o pope_n damasus_n they_o be_v reject_v as_o heretic_n and_o catholic_n be_v forbid_v to_o communicate_v with_o they_o afterward_o these_o 2._o these_o greg._n nazian_n ad_fw-la chelid_n epist_n 2._o apollinarian_o false_o give_v out_o that_o the_o council_n of_o the_o western_a church_n include_v principal_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v again_o receive_v they_o into_o communion_n upon_o the_o news_n of_o this_o report_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n thus_o write_v those_o that_o agree_v with_o apollinaris_n say_v that_o they_o be_v admit_v by_o the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n or_o roman_a bishop_n by_o who_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v once_o condemn_v yet_o acquiescemus_fw-la yet_o hoc_fw-la ostendant_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la acquiescemus_fw-la let_v they_o but_o show_v this_o and_o we_o yield_v for_o it_o be_v manifest_a sunt_fw-la manifest_a perspicwm_fw-la enim_fw-la eos_fw-la veritati_fw-la assen●iri_fw-la nec_fw-la enim_fw-la aliter_fw-la se_fw-la res_fw-la habere_fw-la potest_fw-la si_fw-la hoc_fw-la consecuti_fw-la sunt_fw-la that_o their_o doctrine_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o it_o can_v otherwise_o be_v if_o they_o have_v obtain_v this_o this_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n hence_o baronius_n do_v infer_v against_o heretic_n that_o the_o grecian_a father_n do_v bear_v such_o reverence_n unto_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o roman_a bishop_n believe_v he_o can_v not_o err_v that_o if_o his_o decree_n declarative_a of_o doubtful_a &_o ambiguous_a proposition_n shall_v change_v &_o alter_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o change_v and_o alter_v with_o he_o and_o to_o think_v that_o manner_n of_o speech_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n most_o fit_v for_o the_o present_a which_o he_o do_v for_o the_o present_a allow_v this_o i_o say_v be_v all_o that_o baronius_n do_v affirm_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v change_v his_o decree_n about_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o article_n and_o mystery_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o in_o your_o blind_a aversion_n will_v impose_v upon_o he_o catch_v at_o word_n &_o syllable_n of_o every_o less_o clear_a sentence_n which_o to_o be_v the_o right_n jog_v 26._o jog_v aguntur_fw-la spiritu_fw-la maligno_fw-la in_o pios_fw-la ut_fw-la satanicâ_fw-la virulentia_fw-la incensi_fw-la eorum_n verba_fw-la et_fw-la scripta_fw-la non_fw-fr malotio_n see_fw-la interpretari_fw-la non_fw-la possint_fw-la loc._n commun_n martini_n lutheri_n 5._o class_n pag._n 26._o of_o the_o caluinian_a spirit_n luther_n long_o ago_o note_v the_o conclusion_n behold_v good_a store_n of_o your_o ignorances_n impertinencye_n misallegation_n of_o scripture_n wilful_a &_o unconscionable_a falsehood_n in_o your_o produce_v the_o father_n which_o i_o offer_v unto_o your_o picture_n to_o adorn_v that_o crown_n which_o in_o your_o glorious_a humour_n you_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v set_v over_o your_o book_n in_o the_o second_o page_n thereof_o give_v it_o the_o title_n of_o wisdom_n and_o truth_n triumph_n very_o no_o jewel_n and_o gem_n can_v sit_v the_o crown_n of_o such_o wisdom_n and_o truth_n as_o you_o be_v better_o than_o these_o be_v make_v in_o this_o censure_n clear_a shine_v illustrious_a by_o manifest_a proof_n my_o purpose_n be_v to_o have_v discover_v many_o beside_o these_o yea_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o no_o less_o notorious_a than_o these_o about_o the_o nine_o point_n with_o many_o other_o eminent_a untruth_n but_o now_o i_o perceive_v that_o hereby_o your_o picture_n will_v grow_v though_o not_o disproportionable_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o your_o desert_n yet_o into_o a_o great_a bigness_n they_o paper-image_n use_v to_o have_v which_o common_o be_v still_o less_o than_o their_o pattern_n i_o must_v therefore_o remain_v indebt_v unto_o you_o for_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v many_o hundred_o engage_v myself_o to_o pay_v the_o last_o farthing_n of_o this_o debt_n whensoever_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v exact_v with_o sufficient_a assurance_n that_o the_o performance_n thereof_o shall_v avayle_v not_o only_o to_o your_o personal_a disgrace_n but_o also_o to_o the_o public_a good_a by_o conversion_n of_o so_o many_o by_o you_o miserable_o seduce_v soul_n although_o i_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o former_a be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o clear_a as_o they_o may_v sufficient_o resolve_v such_o as_o depend_v on_o you_o of_o their_o miserable_a and_o dreadful_a danger_n and_o move_v they_o to_o return_v to_o the_o truth_n if_o they_o err_v through_o weakness_n of_o understanding_n not_o through_o wilfulness_n of_o hart_n for_o as_o s._n cyprian_n say_v initio_fw-la say_v lib._n adver_v demetrianum_n initio_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la malum_fw-la motus_fw-la est_fw-la mendacio_fw-la fallente_fw-la multò_fw-la faciliùs_fw-la ad_fw-la bonum_fw-la movebitur_fw-la veritate_fw-la cogente_fw-la such_o as_o have_v be_v simple_o lead_v away_o unto_o evil_n by_o the_o fallacy_n of_o lie_v will_v more_o easy_o be_v bring_v back_o again_o unto_o good_a by_o the_o force_n of_o truth_n finis_fw-la the_o answer_n unto_o the_o nine_o point_n of_o controversy_n propose_v by_o our_o late_a soveraygne_n of_o famous_a memory_n unto_o m._n fisher_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n and_o the_o rejoinder_n unto_o the_o reply_n of_o d._n francis_n white_a minister_n et_fw-la faciam_fw-la vos_fw-fr fieri_fw-la piscatores_fw-la hominum_fw-la matth._n 4.19_o and_o i_o will_v make_v you_o fisher_n of_o men._n permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la m.dc.xxv_o his_o majesty_n note_v deliver_v unto_o m._n fisher._n some_z of_o the_o principal_a point_n which_o withhold_v my_o join_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n except_o she_o reform_v herself_o or_o be_v able_a to_o give_v i_o satisfaction_n be_v these_o 1._o the_o worship_n of_o image_n 2._o the_o praying_n &_o offer_v oblation_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n
controversy_n in_o which_o all_o other_o be_v involue_v and_o by_o the_o decision_n thereof_o resolve_v the_o church_n 35._o church_n 2._o tim._n 3.15_o math._n 16._o isa._n c._n 2._o v._n 3._o dan._n c._n 2._o v._n 35._o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n the_o eminent_a rock_n and_o mountain_n fill_v the_o whole_a world_n on_o the_o top_n whereof_o stand_v the_o tradition_n of_o save_v doctrine_n conspicuous_a and_o immovable_a if_o this_o church_n be_v overthrow_v the_o total_a certainty_n of_o christianity_n can_v but_o with_o it_o together_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n if_o it_o be_v hide_v &_o make_v invisible_a man_n must_v needs_o wander_v in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o first_o deliver_v christian_n doctrine_n without_o end_n or_o hope_v of_o ever_o arrive_v at_o any_o certain_a issue_n and_o if_o this_o controversy_n be_v not_o examine_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o first_o place_n disputation_n by_o 19_o by_o non_fw-la ad_fw-la scripturas_fw-la provocandum_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o ijs_fw-la constituendum_fw-la certamen_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la aut_fw-la nulla_fw-la aut_fw-la parùm_fw-la certa_fw-la victoria_fw-la tertull._n in_o praescrip_n c._n 19_o scripture_n will_v prove_v fruitless_a by_o the_o sole_a evidency_n whereof_o no_o victory_n can_v be_v get_v against_o proteruious_a error_n or_o at_o lest_o no_o victory_n that_o be_v very_o scripture_n very_o the_o minister_n pag._n 8._o say_v that_o by_o the_o church_n apparent_a victory_n can_v beget_v more_o than_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v false_a for_o apparent_a victory_n be_v that_o whereby_o man_n be_v force_v to_o yield_v or_o else_o to_o disclaim_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o judge_n if_o the_o true_a church_n be_v find_v out_o and_o make_v judge_n man_n may_v be_v force_v by_o her_o sentence_n to_o yield_v unto_o truth_n or_o else_o to_o disclaim_v from_o the_o judge_n which_o yet_o we_o see_v be_v not_o do_v by_o the_o scripture_n for_o man_n that_o allow_v the_o same_o scripture_n to_o be_v judge_n neither_o be_v force_v to_o yield_v unto_o truth_n nor_o to_o appeal_v from_o the_o scripture_n yea_o say_v luther_n tom._n 2._o witt._n in_o contion_n domin_n octavae_fw-la post_fw-la trinit_fw-la fol._n 118._o never_o any_o heresy_n be_v so_o pestilent_a or_o foolish_a that_o do_v not_o cover_v itself_o with_o the_o veil_n of_o scripture_n apparent_a neither_o will_v answer_n about_o particular_a doctrine_n easy_o satisfy_v a_o mind_n preoccupy_v with_o a_o long_a continue_a dislike_n of_o they_o because_v the_o minister_n have_v repeat_v sundry_a false_a principle_n and_o move_v many_o doubt_n about_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n declare_v in_o the_o two_o ensue_a ground_n of_o the_o jesuit_n answer_n because_o also_o this_o controversy_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o rest_n by_o which_o they_o be_v final_o resolve_v and_o except_o it_o be_v clear_v in_o the_o first_o place_n heresy_n will_v be_v still_o hide_v itself_o in_o the_o obscurity_n thereof_o hence_o i_o have_v think_v necessary_a in_o this_o very_a entry_n to_o superadde_a and_o prefix_v this_o ensue_a treatise_n a_o short_a treatise_n concern_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o more_o full_a clear_n of_o the_o ensue_a controversy_n about_o tradition_n scripture_n &_o the_o church_n this_o treatise_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n in_o the_o first_o i_o will_v set_v down_o and_o refute_v the_o protestant_a form_n of_o resolution_n in_o the_o second_o declare_v and_o prove_v the_o catholic_a the_o protestant_a resolution_n of_o faith_n declare_v §._o 1._o protestant_n perceive_v that_o if_o they_o pretend_v to_o believe_v christian_a religion_n without_o see_v the_o truth_n thereof_o upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v they_o must_v consequent_o believe_v that_o god_n reveal_v it_o upon_o the_o word_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o preach_v the_o same_o to_o the_o world_n as_o doctrine_n unto_o they_o reveal_v of_o god_n &_o then_o again_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v thus_o preach_v &_o publish_v it_o by_o 19_o by_o quid_fw-la apostoli_fw-la praedicaverint_fw-la praescribam_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la probari_fw-la debere_fw-la quàm_fw-la per_fw-la easdem_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la quas_fw-la ipsi_fw-la condiderunt_fw-la tertull._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 19_o the_o light_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v they_o deliver_v it_o hand_n to_o hand_n as_o from_o they_o which_o tradition_n if_o they_o admit_v as_o a_o certain_a &_o infallible_a rule_n they_o be_v alij_fw-la be_v to_o this_o purpose_n they_o say_v so_o long_o as_o we_o stay_v upon_o the_o father_n we_o shall_v still_o continue_v in_o our_o old_a popish_a error_n peter_n martyr_n de_fw-fr votis_fw-la pag._n 476._o luther_n de_fw-fr ser●uo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la tom._n 2._o wittenberg_n pag._n 434._o pomeran_n in_o jonam_fw-la napier_n upon_o the_o revelation_n calius_n curio_n &_o alij_fw-la bring_v into_o strait_n and_o mighty_o press_v to_o receive_v many_o doctrine_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o be_v now_o resolute_a never_o to_o believe_v therefore_o to_o lay_v the_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n they_o will_v fain_o build_v their_o faith_n on_o a_o high_a ground_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n dark_o reveal_v to_o wit_n believe_v wit_n john_n white_a defence_n pag._n 309._o none_o can_v believe_v except_o god_n illuminate_v their_o heart_n but_o such_o as_o have_v this_o illumination_n do_v see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v on_o divine_a illumination_n whereby_o they_o see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v whereby_o they_o be_v rest_n be_v francis_n white_a orthodox_n pag._n 108._o add_v that_o protestant_n herein_o be_v like_a to_o a_o man_n that_o see_v a_o far_o off_o a_o obscure_a glimmer_n but_o come_v to_o the_o place_n behold_v the_o light_n itself_o and_o the_o same_o be_v teach_v by_o caluin_n institut_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 7._o n._n 2._o and_o the_o rest_n convict_v in_o conscience_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v divine_a by_o the_o lustre_n and_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o sense_v according_a unto_o their_o manner_n the_o former_a resolution_n confute_v by_o six_o argument_n §._o 2._o this_o pretence_n of_o resolution_n so_o much_o worth_n much_o pag._n 19_o lin_v 4._o &_o pag._n 28._o lin_v 3._o &_o ibid._n lin_v 28._o &_o pag._n 68_o lin_v 20._o the_o majesty_n and_o lustre_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n be_v such_o as_o it_o appear_v illustrious_a though_o propound_v by_o mean_a and_o obscure_a person_n as_o a_o rich_a jewel_n do_v manifest_v his_o own_o worth_n repeat_v by_o our_o minister_n in_o this_o reply_n be_v refell_v by_o 6._o argument_n as_o be_v extreme_o arrogant_a ignorant_a disorderly_a fond_a desperate_a the_o devise_n of_o satan_n the_o first_o argument_n first_o what_o more_o arrogant_a then_o to_o challenge_v ordinary_a illumination_n more_o high_a rare_a and_o excellent_a than_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o apostle_n though_o they_o have_v this_o privilege_n that_o christian_a religion_n be_v to_o they_o immediate_o reveal_v of_o god_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o see_v the_o resplendent_a verity_n &_o shi●ing_a truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o but_o see_v dark_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v not_o see_v as_o s._n paul_n do_v see_v do_v 1._o cor._n 13.12_o videmus_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_o speculo_fw-la in_o aenigmate_fw-la we_o see_v through_o a_o glass_n dark_o that_o be_v we_o be_v sure_a by_o believe_v god_n word_n of_o what_o we_o do_v not_o see_v testify_v therefore_o illumination_n show_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v challendged_a by_o protestant_n be_v more_o high_a rare_a and_o excellent_a light_n then_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v what_o great_a joan._n great_a innumerabiles_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la se_fw-la videntes_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la iactant_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o à_fw-la christo_fw-la illuminatos_fw-la videri_fw-la volunt_fw-la sunt_fw-la autem_fw-la haeretici_fw-la augustin_n tract_n 43._o in_o joan._n arrogancy_n swenkfeldian_o equal_v themselves_o unto_o the_o apostle_n pretend_v immediate_a revelation_n and_o teach_n from_o god_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v but_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v equal_v themselves_o unto_o the_o bless_a who_o happiness_n be_v to_o see_v 29._o see_v fides_n est_fw-la credere_fw-la quod_fw-la nondum_fw-la vides_fw-la cvius_fw-la fidei_fw-la merces_fw-la est_fw-la videre_fw-la quod_fw-la credis_fw-la augustin_n de_fw-fr verb._n apostol_n serm._n 29._o what_o we_o believe_v special_o see_v one_o point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n protestant_n pretend_v to_o see_v be_v the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o true_a light_n and_o resplendent_a verity_n whereof_o a_o man_n can_v see_v manifest_o without_o be_v bless_v the_o second_o argument_n second_o what_o great_a ignorance_n against_o the_o rudiment_n of_o christian_a religion_n then_o to_o resolve_v christian_a faith_n by_o the_o evidence_n and_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o
by_o grace_n can_v discern_v the_o same_o to_o be_v his_o voice_n and_o word_n this_o be_v speak_v with_o more_o confidence_n than_o consideration_n god_n have_v a_o 1._o a_o joan._n 1._o eternal_a increate_v manner_n of_o speak_v to_o wit_n the_o production_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n by_o which_o the_o bless_a discern_v he_o from_o all_o other_o speaker_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o blissful_a learning_n but_o no_o create_a manner_n of_o speak_v revelation_n speak_v this_o be_v also_o true_a when_o god_n speak_v inward_o to_o the_o soul_n for_o in_o that_o speak_n he_o use_v the_o native_a intellectual_a tongue_n that_o be_v the_o understand_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n his_o divine_a inspiration_n be_v apprehension_n of_o understanding_n of_o the_o will_n and_o affection_n hence_o this_o inward_a speak_n be_v not_o by_o the_o mere_a sound_n know_v to_o be_v divine_a but_o by_o the_o conjecture_n of_o some_o effect_n or_o by_o special_a revelation_n be_v so_o proper_a to_o god_n as_o it_o can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v his_o speak_n by_o the_o mere_a sound_n of_o the_o voice_n without_o special_a revelation_n or_o else_o some_o consequent_a miraculous_a effect_n which_o i_o declare_v and_o prove_v by_o this_o argument_n if_o there_o be_v a_o man_n that_o have_v no_o proper_a sound_n and_o accent_n of_o voice_n but_o can_v and_o do_v exact_o use_v the_o voice_n of_o every_o man_n as_o he_o please_v this_o man_n can_v not_o be_v know_v by_o his_o voice_n likewise_o if_o a_o man_n have_v no_o proper_a stile_n in_o writing_n but_o can_v perfect_o write_v the_o stile_n of_o any_o author_n as_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a he_o can_v not_o be_v know_v from_o other_o writer_n by_o his_o phrase_n but_o god_n have_v no_o proper_a external_a sound_n or_o accent_n of_o voice_n nor_o any_o proper_a stile_n or_o phrase_n in_o writing_n but_o use_v the_o prope●_n tongue_n of_o those_o man_n who_o it_o please_v he_o to_o inspire_v fold_v up_o his_o heavenly_a conceit_n in_o the_o prophet_n natural_a language_n whence_o arise_v sapit_fw-la arise_v the_o difference_n of_o stile_n betwixt_o the_o apocalyps_n and_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n be_v note_v by_o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 7._o c._n 10._o and_o caluin_n institut_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 8._o note_v variety_n of_o stile_n among_o the_o evangelist_n &_o prophet_n davidi_n &_o isaiae_n ●ucunda_fw-la &_o suavis_fw-la fluit_fw-la oratio_fw-la apud_fw-la amos_n pastorem_fw-la jeremiam_fw-la &_o zacharian_a asperior_fw-la sermorusticitatem_fw-la sapit_fw-la such_o difference_n of_o style_n among_o the_o sacred_a writer_n so_o that_o it_o be_v great_a want_n of_o discretion_n to_o think_v to_o know_v a_o book_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o the_o stile_n abstract_v from_o the_o matter_n now_o the_o matter_n be_v such_o as_o it_o do_v not_o with_o evidence_n certain_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v nothing_o but_o truth_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v learned_a man_n as_o have_v be_v say_v may_v from_o within_o scripture_n gather_v argument_n that_o probable_o persuade_v that_o the_o same_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o evident_a probability_n can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o persuasion_n certain_a and_o inevident_a it_o may_v be_v a_o comfortable_a confirmation_n not_o a_o assure_a foundation_n of_o faith_n the_o five_o argument_n if_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a and_o evident_a but_o only_o to_o such_o as_o have_v the_o light_n and_o faculty_n of_o faith_n they_o can_v be_v the_o prime_a principle_n of_o faith_n evident_a in_o themselves_o &_o not_o prove_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v clear_a because_o every_o faculty_n suppose_v her_o principle_n &_o by_o the_o light_n of_o they_o which_o the_o student_n bring_v with_o he_o she_o show_v truth_n pertinent_a unto_o her_o skill_n that_o be_v hide_v but_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a and_o evident_a but_o to_o such_o only_a as_o have_v aforehand_o the_o light_n and_o faculty_n of_o faith_n yea_o they_o be_v dark_a &_o obscure_a unto_o infidel_n as_o not_o only_o the_o 9_o the_o verbum_fw-la eius_fw-la infidelibus_fw-la nox_fw-la est_fw-la hilarius_n in_o cap._n 10._o matth._n 2._o caluin_n l._n 1._o justit_fw-la c._n 8._o n._n 9_o father_n teach_v but_o also_o protestant_n grant_v therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o prime_a principle_n of_o faith_n suppose_v before_o faith_n which_o infidel_n see_v to_o be_v true_a resolve_v to_o believe_v the_o mysterye_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o be_v secondary_a truth_n dark_a and_o obscure_a in_o themselves_o believe_v upon_o the_o prime_a principle_n of_o faith_n the_o sixth_o argument_n hence_o arise_v the_o sixth_o argument_n which_o be_v à_fw-la priori_fw-la if_o scripture_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o light_n of_o a_o superior_a principle_n of_o faith_n they_o be_v not_o the_o prime_a principle_n of_o say_v evident_a in_o themselves_o and_o indemonstrable_a but_o scripture_n be_v prove_v by_o a_o superior_a &_o more_o evident_a principle_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v true_a because_o god_n the_o prime_a verity_n author_n of_o scripture_n can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v now_o that_o prime_a verity_n can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v be_v a_o principle_n of_o faith_n superior_a and_o more_o evident_a than_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o god_n and_o divine_a therefore_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a indemonstrable_a principle_n of_o faith_n but_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v truth_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n publish_v it_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v it_o as_o such_o even_o as_o all_o as_o other_o mysterye_n of_o faith_n be_v prove_v the_o seven_o argument_n final_o protestant_n for_o this_o their_o fancy_n of_o final_a resolution_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n have_v not_o any_o argument_n worth_a a_o rush_n their_o chief_a argument_n be_v two_o first_o scripture_n be_v a_o principle_n of_o faith_n but_o principle_n be_v to_o be_v evident_a in_o themselves_o and_o to_o be_v know_v by_o their_o own_o light_n this_o argument_n much_a &_o often_o urge_v by_o you_o &_o your_o 20._o your_o way_n pag._n 37._o defence_n cap._n 20._o brother_n be_v silly_a because_o all_o principle_n must_v not_o be_v evident_a in_o themselves_o but_o only_o the_o first_o &_o prime_a principle_n of_o every_o faculty_n or_o hability_n of_o knowledge_n as_o all_o know_v but_o scripture_n be_v not_o as_o have_v be_v show_v the_o prime_a principle_n of_o faith_n but_o be_v secondary_a principle_n which_o be_v know_v we_o by_o the_o light_n of_o they_o may_v know_v many_o other_o thing_n the_o second_o argument_n elsewhere_o argument_n this_o argument_n be_v urge_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 16._o and_o often_o elsewhere_o the_o scripture_n be_v light_a for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v light_n and_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o every_o light_n be_v evident_a in_o itself_o and_o know_v by_o the_o evidence_n it_o have_v in_o itself_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n must_v of_o themselves_o appear●_n and_o show_n that_o they_o be_v divine_a truth_n i_o answer_v the_o minor_a of_o this_o argument_n be_v false_a &_o the_o whole_a argument_n ground_v upon_o ignorance_n in_o not_o discern_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o corporal_a &_o spiritual_a light_n true_a it_o be_v that_o every_o corporal_a light_n that_o do_v enlighten_v the_o eye_n of_o body_n must_v be_v evident_a in_o itself_o &_o primely_a &_o original_o clear_a but_o not_o so_o every_o truth_n that_o illustrate_v man_n understanding_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o eye_n of_o body_n can_v by_o thing_n see_v infer_v &_o conclude_v thing_n that_o be_v hide_v but_o only_o can_v apprehend_v what_o do_v direct_o and_o immediate_o show_v itself_o but_o man_n understanding_n not_o only_o apprehend_v what_o show_v itself_o but_o by_o thing_n know_v infer_v &_o breed_v in_o itself_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n hide_v hence_o unto_o understanding_n though_o thing_n show_v themselves_o direct_o and_o by_o their_o own_o light_n be_v she_o prime_a principle_n and_o mean_n to_o know_v other_o thing_n yet_o also_o thing_n hide_v in_o themselves_o be_v former_o know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o authority_n may_v thereby_o become_v light_n that_o be_v mean_v to_o know_v yet_o further_o of_o thing_n hide_v so_o that_o speak_v of_o spiritual_a and_o intellectual_a light_n it_o be_v false_a that_o all_o light_n enlighten_v man_n understanding_n to_o know_v other_o thing_n be_v evident_a in_o themselves_o yea_o some_o secondary_a principle_n and_o light_n there_o be_v which_o must_v be_v show_v by_o superior_a light_n before_o they_o become_v light_n in_o which_o kind_n be_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o light_n unto_o the_o faithful_a
because_o know_v by_o the_o church_n perpetual_a tradition_n to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a authority_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o god_n supreme_a verity_n who_o can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o second_o part_n about_o the_o catholic_a resolution_n of_o faith_n no_o doubt_n but_o that_o to_o the_o end_n a_o man_n may_v believe_v divine_a inward_a illumination_n anoint_v his_o hart_n be_v necessary_a the_o question_n be_v what_o be_v the_o external_a infallible_a ground_n unto_o which_o divine_a inspiration_n move_v man_n to_o adhere_v that_o they_o may_v be_v settle_v in_o the_o true_a save_a faith_n the_o answer_n in_o few_o word_n be_v this_o the_o resolution_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v firm_o assure_v about_o four_o principle_n against_o four_o enemy_n by_o four_o perfection_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prima_fw-la veritas_fw-la prime_n and_o infinite_a verity_n that_o can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v this_o i_o declare_v and_o prove_v the_o first_o principle_n prove_v §._o 1._o the_o first_o enemy_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n be_v the_o pagan_a vivimus_fw-la pagan_a dicunt_fw-la pagani_fw-la ben●_n vivimus_fw-la or_o profane_a joan._n profane_a fuerunt_fw-la philosophi_fw-la de_fw-la virtutibus_fw-la &_o vitijs_fw-la sublimia_fw-la multa_fw-la tractantes_fw-la aug._n tract_n 45._o in_o joan._n philosopher_n who_o be_v persuade_v he_o may_v attain_v unto_o perfect_a felicity_n and_o sanctity_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o sole_a natural_a truth_n against_o this_o enemy_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v that_o only_a which_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n unto_o his_o prophet_n about_o this_o principle_n true_a believer_n be_v resolve_v by_o a_o perfection_n which_o in_o the_o first_o place_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prime_a &_o infinite_a verity_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o can_v lie_v nor_o reveal_v any_o untruth_n when_o he_o speak_v immediate_o himself_o by_o secret_a inspiration_n hence_o we_o thus_o resolve_v god_n the_o prime_a verity_n can_v reveal_v untruth_n special_o about_o the_o state-matter_n of_o salvation_n when_o he_o speak_v by_o secret_a inspiration_n immediate_o himself_o but_o he_o reveal_v in_o this_o manner_n by_o inspiration_n unto_o his_o prophet_n that_o man_n can_v serve_v he_o true_o nor_o be_v save_v without_o know_v supernatural_a truth_n beyond_o the_o reason_n the_o as_o man_n felicity_n the_o blissful_a vision_n of_o god_n be_v above_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n so_o it_o be_v convenient_a god_n shall_v bring_v he_o unto_o it_o by_o believe_a truth_n above_o the_o reach_n of_o his_o reason_n reach_n of_o reason_n which_o truth_n in_o particular_a he_o reveal_v unto_o they_o therefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v supernatural_a truth_n such_o as_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n unto_o his_o prophet_n and_o other_o who_o he_o do_v vouchsafe_v to_o teach_v immediate_o by_o himself_o and_o send_v they_o to_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o world_n this_o the_o prime_a and_o high_a principle_n of_o christian_a resolution_n protestant_n not_o in_o express_a word_n but_o in_o deed_n and_o by_o consequence_n reject_v from_o be_v the_o stay_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o as_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o aristotle_n last_o and_o final_o by_o the_o light_n and_o evidence_n thereof_o because_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v conformable_a to_o reason_n do_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o aristotle_n nor_o upon_o his_o bare_a world_n even_o so_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o light_n &_o resplendent_a verity_n thereof_o because_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a truth_n as_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o do_v do_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o author_n and_o doctor_n of_o scripture_n nor_o his_o bare_a mere_a &_o pure_a word_n this_o be_v most_o evident_a for_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o some_o doctor_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o another_o to_o believe_v his_o word_n through_o reverence_n unto_o his_o authority_n as_o know_v he_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o his_o word_n hence_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v so_o independent_a of_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n as_o though_o god_n be_v not_o prime_a verity_n but_o fallible_a in_o his_o word_n yet_o their_o faith_n may_v subsist_v as_o now_o it_o do_v this_o be_v clear_a because_o let_v one_o be_v never_o so_o fallible_a and_o false_a yet_o when_o his_o say_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a we_o may_v yea_o we_o can_v but_o believe_v his_o word_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n thereof_o but_o protestant_n pretend_v that_o the_o say_n of_o scripture_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o light_n &_o lustre_n of_o the_o doctrine_n believe_v therein_o &_o upon_o this_o resplendent_a verity_n they_o build_v last_o their_o faith_n therefore_o though_o god_n be_v fallible_a &_o may_v be_v false_a yet_o their_o faith_n that_o his_o scripture_n be_v truth_n which_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v truth_n by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n may_v subsist_v be_v this_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o depend_v not_o upon_o god_n be_v the_o prime_n and_o infallible_a verity_n which_o give_v no_o more_o credit_n unto_o god_n than_o man_n will_v give_v unto_o a_o liar_n to_o wit_n to_o believe_v he_o so_o far_o as_o they_o see_v he_o to_o credit_v the_o word_n of_o his_o teach_n so_o far_o as_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v truth_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n very_o this_o form_n of_o faith_n resolution_n be_v gross_a and_o unchristian_a which_o i_o be_o persuade_v protestant_n will_v not_o maintain_v do_v they_o well_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v or_o can_v they_o find_v some_o other_o way_n of_o resolution_n whereby_o they_o may_v know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o god_n without_o be_v bind_v to_o rely_v upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o principle_n demonstrate_v §._o 2._o some_z will_v say_v god_n be_v prime_a verity_n by_o who_o word_n we_o can_v be_v deceive_v but_o how_o prou●_n you_o these_o pretend_v divine_a revelation_n to_o be_v true_o such_o here_o come_v in_o the_o second_o enemy_n of_o true_a religion_n who_o follow_v his_o blind_a passion_n labour_v to_o deprive_v the_o world_n of_o the_o proof_n of_o divine_a revelation_n that_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o the_o sun_n this_o enemy_n be_v the_o jew_n who_o grant_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v supernatural_a truth_n reveal_v of_o god_n deny_v the_o reveal_v doctrine_n of_o god_n to_o be_v apostolical_a that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n against_o this_o enemy_n be_v the_o second_o principle_n of_o true_a religion_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n reveal_v of_o god_n be_v no_o other_o but_o apostolical_a that_o be_v which_o the_o apostle_n publish_v to_o the_o world_n about_o this_o principle_n true_a believer_n be_v resolve_v by_o a_o second_o perfection_n of_o the_o prime_a verity_n which_o be_v that_o he_o can_v with_o his_o seal_n that_o be_v with_o miracle_n and_o work_n proper_a to_o himself_o warrant_v or_o subsigne_v falsehood_n devise_v or_o vent_v by_o any_o man_n hence_o we_o make_v this_o resolution_n god_n be_v infinite_a verity_n can_v by_o sign_n and_o miracle_n testify_v falsehood_n devise_v and_o vent_v by_o man_n god_n have_v by_o manifest_a miracle_n testify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v his_o word_n and_o message_n ergo_fw-la the_o same_o be_v not_o a_o false_a religion_n invent_v of_o man_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n reveal_v of_o god_n the_o miracle_n by_o which_o the_o prime_a verity_n have_v give_v testimony_n unto_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n may_v be_v reduce_v unto_o four_o head_n first_o the_o miraculous_a prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n most_o clear_o &_o punctual_o fullfil_v in_o christ_n jesus_n his_o b._n mother_n his_o apostle_n his_o church_n second_o the_o miraculous_a work_n in_o all_o kind_n which_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o disciple_n have_v wrought_v which_o be_v so_o many_o so_o manifest_a so_o wonderful_a &_o above_o nature_n as_o we_o can_v desire_v great_a evidence_n three_o the_o miraculous_a conversion_n of_o the_o world_n by_o twelve_o poor_a unlearned_a fisherman_n the_o world_n i_o say_v which_o they_o be_v in_o the_o flower_n of_o human_a pride_n &_o glory_n in_o the_o height_n of_o human_a erudition_n and_o learning_n bring_v they_o to_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n seem_o absurd_a in_o reason_n to_o follow_v a_o course_n of_o discipline_n true_o repugnant_a unto_o sensuality_n to_o embrace_v a_o way_n of_o salvation_n
go_n ergo_fw-la god_n be_v the_o prime_a verity_n can_v permit_v catholic_a christian_a tradition_n to_o be_v falsify_v how_o the_o church_n tradition_n be_v prove_v infallible_a independent_o of_o scripture_n §._o 4._o hence_o be_v answer_v the_o common_a objection_n which_o protestant_n make_v that_o tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n make_v by_o man_n be_v fallible_a &_o subject_n to_o error_n for_o they_o may_v deceive_v or_o be_v deceive_v if_o we_o answer_v that_o christian_a catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n be_v infallible_a through_o god_n special_a assistance_n they_o reply_v this_o infallibility_n of_o tradition_n through_o divine_a assistance_n can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o before_o we_o can_v build_v our_o faith_n on_o tradition_n as_o infallible_a we_o must_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o we_o can_v build_v our_o persuasion_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v apostolical_a and_o divine_a on_o tradition_n except_o we_o commit_v a_o circle_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o catholic_a tradition_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v probat_fw-la be_v est_fw-la summus_fw-la gradus_fw-la certitudinis_fw-la humanae_fw-la de_fw-la qua_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la dici_fw-la potest_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la illi_fw-la falsum_fw-la subesse_fw-la suarez_n de_fw-fr gratia_fw-la l._n 9_o c._n 11._o n._n 11._o et_fw-la hoc_fw-la ibid._n probat_fw-la simple_o infallible_a by_o the_o very_a nature_n thereof_o for_o tradition_n be_v full_a report_n about_o what_o be_v evident_a unto_o sense_n to_o wit_n what_o doctrine_n and_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n public_o deliver_v unto_o the_o world_n it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v false_a world_n of_o man_n can_v be_v uniform_o mistake_v and_o deceive_v about_o a_o matter_n evident_a to_o sense_n and_o not_o be_v deceive_v be_v so_o many_o in_o number_n so_o divide_v in_o place_n of_o so_o different_a affectious_a and_o conditious_a it_o be_v impossible_a they_o 28._o they_o neglexerit_fw-la officium_fw-la suum_fw-la villicus_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n quî_fw-la verisimile_fw-la ut_fw-la tot_fw-la &_o tantae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o unam_fw-la fidem_fw-la erraverint_fw-la variasse_n debuerat_fw-la error_n ecclesiarun_n caeterùm_fw-la quod_fw-la apud_fw-la multos_fw-la unum_fw-la invenitur_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la erratum_fw-la sed_fw-la traditum_fw-la tertullian_n de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n 28._o shall_v so_o have_v agree_v in_o their_o tale_n have_v they_o malicious_o resolve_v to_o deceive_v the_o world_n wherefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o what_o be_v deliver_v by_o full_a catholic_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v a_o thing_n by_o the_o traditioner_n first_o devise_v second_o i_o say_v that_o how_o soever_o human_a tradition_n may_v be_v by_o nature_n fallible_a yet_o the_o christian_a catholic_a be_v assist_v of_o god_n that_o no_o error_n can_v creep_v into_o the_o same_o which_o divine_a assistance_n to_o be_v due_a unto_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o perfection_n of_o divine_a verity_n &_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o tradition_n precedent_o &_o independent_o of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o without_o any_o circle_n by_o two_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v the_o same_o we_o before_o touch_v god_n be_v prime_a verity_n can_v connive_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o convey_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n unto_o posterity_n which_o bind_v religious_a believer_n to_o receive_v the_o same_o as_o his_o word_n shall_v secret_o be_v infect_v with_o damnable_a error_n for_o be_v infinite_a verity_n in_o his_o knowledge_n this_o can_v be_v do_v without_o his_o privity_n know_v thereof_o be_v infinite_a veracity_n in_o his_o teach_v the_o truth_n he_o can_v yield_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o convey_v his_o truth_n oblige_v man_n to_o believe_v shall_v imperceptible_o be_v poison_v whereby_o man_n for_o their_o devotion_n unto_o his_o verity_n incur_v damnation_n this_o be_v so_o i_o assume_v but_o the_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n bind_v christian_n to_o who_o it_o be_v deliver_v to_o believe_v the_o same_o as_o god_n word_n this_o i_o prove_v when_o doctrine_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v as_o god_n word_n man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o but_o that_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v as_o god_n word_n unto_o christian_n which_o be_v unto_o they_o sufficient_o propose_v ●s_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n now_o that_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_a proposition_n and_o proof_n that_o that_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n be_v prove_v first_o because_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n be_v by_o nature_n simple_o infallible_a as_o have_v be_v show_v but_o proposition_n know_v simple_o to_o be_v infallible_a be_v sufficient_a to_o bind_v man_n to_o believe_v second_o catholic_a tradition_n that_o be_v the_o report_n of_o a_o world_n of_o ancestor_n concern_v sensible_a matter_n of_o fact_n be_v so_o pregnant_a and_o obligatory_a as_o it_o be_v insolent_a madness_n to_o deny_v it_o in_o so_o much_o as_o even_o tradita_fw-la even_o caluin_n institut_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 8._o n._n 9_o quaerunt_fw-la quis_fw-la nos_fw-la certiores_fw-la fecerit_fw-la à_fw-la moyse_n &_o aliis_fw-la prophetis_fw-la haec_fw-la fuisse_fw-la scripta_fw-la quae_fw-la sub_fw-la eorum_fw-la nominibus_fw-la leguntur_fw-la etc._n etc._n quis_fw-la non_fw-la colaphis_fw-la &_o flagellis_fw-la castistandum_fw-la illum_fw-la insanum_fw-la dicat_fw-la certô_o certiùs_fw-la est_fw-la ipso_fw-la rum_o scripta_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la pervenisse_fw-la ad_fw-la posteros_fw-la quàm_fw-la de_fw-la manu_fw-la in_o manum_fw-la tradita_fw-la caluin_n say_v that_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n concern_v the_o author_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v reform_v with_o a_o cudgel_n then_o refute_v by_o argument_n three_o god_n himself_o send_v child_n unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o their_o ancestor_n to_o learn_v of_o they_o the_o sensible_a work_n of_o his_o miraculous_a power_n do_v in_o former_a age_n 32.7_o age_n deuteron_n 32.7_o ask_v thy_o father_n and_o he_o will_v tell_v thou_o thy_o ancestor_n and_o they_o will_v certify_v thou_o four_o the_o proof_n of_o tradition_n be_v so_o full_a and_o sufficient_a as_o it_o convince_v infidel_n for_o though_o they_o be_v blind_a not_o to_o see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v divine_a yet_o be_v they_o not_o so_o void_a of_o common_a sense_n impudent_a and_o obstinate_a as_o they_o will_v deny_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a catholic_a tradition_n to_o be_v true_o christian_n &_o apostolical_a whence_o two_o thing_n be_v evident_a first_o that_o catholic_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o external_a sufficient_a proposition_n and_o a_o convince_a argument_n that_o the_o doctrine_n so_o deliver_v be_v apostolical_a &_o consequent_o divine_a reveal_v doctrine_n second_o that_o heresy_n which_o stand_v against_o this_o tradition_n 〈◊〉_d wilful_a obstinacy_n and_o madness_n and_o worse_o than_o paganism_n the_o second_o argument_n god_n be_v prime_a verity_n bind_v all_o man_n that_o will_v be_v save_v to_o know_v and_o firm_o believe_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n even_o until_o the_o world_n end_n can_v connive_v that_o the_o only_a mean_n to_o know_v this_o doctrine_n perpetual_o and_o ever_o after_o the_o apostle_n decease_n be_v secret_o &_o insensible_o poison_v with_o error_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n this_o be_v ●eere_o the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o man_n succeed_v ●he_n apostle_n may_v know_v assure_o what_o scripture_n ●nd_v doctrine_n they_o deliver_v to_o the_o primitive_a catholic_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a tradition_n by_o world_n ●f_a christian_a father_n &_o pastor_n unto_o world_n of_o christian_a child_n and_o faithful_a people_n ergo_fw-la catholic_a tradition_n be_v by_o god_n the_o prime_a verity_n so_o defend_v preserve_v &_o assist_v as_o no_o error_n against_o salvation_n ●an_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o same_o &_o consequent_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a notion_n of_o prime_a verity_n independent_o of_o scripture_n that_o catholic_a tradition_n be_v ●roved_v to_o be_v infallible_a through_o god_n special_a assistance_n ●he_v difference_n between_o prophetical_a and_o ordinary_a divine_a illumination_n by_o which_o protestant_n cavil_n be_v answer_v §._o 5._o against_o the_o minor_a of_o the_o former_a argument_n protestant_n object_v first_o that_o though_o the_o testimony_n of_o tradition_n be_v a_o good_a 32._o good_a reply_v pa._n 15._o lin_v 32._o moral_n human_a and_o pro●able_a proof_n that_o these_o scripture_n be_v by_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v yet_o the_o chief_a ground_n of_o faith_n in_o ●his_n point_n be_v inward_a illumination_n &_o the_o testimony_n ●f_n the_o spirit_n speak_v within_o our_o hart_n and_o assure_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o truth_n i_o answer_v god_n may_v assure_v man_n of_o ●ruth_n by_o inward_a inspiration_n two_o way_n first_o by_o the_o ●●ght_n of_o inward_a teach_n and_o inspiration_n without_o ●he_n mediation_n and_o concourse_n of_o any_o external_a infallible_a ground_n of_o assurance_n second_o by_o the_o light_a
reveal_v all_o these_o veritye_n to_o christ_n jesus_n and_o he_o 15._o he_o omnia_fw-la quae_fw-la audivi_fw-la à_fw-la patre_fw-la nota_fw-la feci_fw-la vobis_fw-la joan._n 15._o v._n 15._o again_o to_o his_o apostle_n partly_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o principal_o by_o the_o immediate_a teach_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o shall_v deliver_v 28.20_o deliver_v docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la math._n 28.20_o they_o unto_o mankind_n to_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v every_o where_o over_o the_o world_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n thereof_o four_o that_o the_o 20._o the_o illi_fw-la profecti_fw-la praedicaverunt_fw-la ubique_fw-la marc._n ult._n 20._o apostle_n do_v according_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n &_o deliver_v unto_o they_o partly_o by_o write_v partly_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n the_o 6.20_o the_o o_o timothee_n depositum_fw-la custodi_fw-la 1._o tim._n 6.20_o whole_a entire_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n plant_v a_o universal_a christian_a company_n charge_v they_o to_o keep_v inviolable_o and_o to_o deliver_v 1.2_o deliver_v haec_fw-la commenda_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la hominibus_fw-la qui_fw-la possunt_fw-la alios_fw-la instruere_fw-la 2._o tim._n 1.2_o unto_o their_o posterity_n what_o they_o have_v of_o they_o the_o first_o messenger_n of_o the_o gospel_n five_o though_o the_o apostle_n be_v depart_v &_o their_o primitive_a hearer_n decease_v yet_o there_o still_o remain_v a_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n by_o which_o all_o man_n may_v assure_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o the_o primitive_a church_n receyve_v of_o they_o see_v the_o church_n even_o to_o the_o world_n end_n must_v be_v 4.5.11_o be_v ephes._n 2.20_o etc._n etc._n 4.5.11_o found_v on_o the_o apostle_n and_o believe_v nothing_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v of_o they_o these_o thing_n be_v suppose_v the_o question_n be_v what_o this_o mean_n be_v and_o how_o man_n may_v now_o adays_o so_o many_o age_n after_o their_o death_n know_v certain_o what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v original_o &_o preach_v to_o which_o question_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o last_o and_o final_a resolution_n tradition_n resolution_n note_v that_o the_o minister_n many_o time_n do_v falsify_v the_o jesuit_n tenet_n special_o pag._n 34._o saying_n that_o the_o last_o and_o final_a resolution_n be_v into_o unwritten_a tradition_n &_o not_o into_o scripture_n this_o he_o do_v not_o say_v but_o that_o the_o persuasion_n that_o our_o faith_n be_v true_a be_v final_o resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o that_o it_o be_v divine_a into_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a preach_v but_o what_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n we_o know_v only_o by_o tradition_n thereof_o be_v not_o into_o scripture_n but_o into_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v preface_n succeed_v all_o from_o this_o place_n unto_o the_o first_o argument_n the_o minister_n leave_v out_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o whole_a discourse_n yet_o he_o say_v he_o have_v set_v down_o the_o book_n verbatim_o see_v his_o preface_n the_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o principle_n set_v down_o by_o tertullian_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o golden_a by_o protestant_n commend_v book_n 1.61.21_o book_n tertull._n de_fw-fr prescript_n 1.61.21_o quid_fw-la apostoli_fw-la p●●dicaverint_fw-la praescribam_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la probari_fw-la debere_fw-la quàm_fw-la per_fw-la easdem_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la quas_fw-la ipsi_fw-la condiderunt_fw-la that_o be_v i_o set_v down_o this_o principle_n what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v be_v to_o be_v prove_v no_o otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v by_o which_o prescription_n join_v with_o the_o other_o five_o supposition_n be_v raise_v the_o ladder_n for_o true_a catholic_a resolution_n about_o faith_n set_v down_o by_o the_o say_v tertullian_n on_o which_o a_o christian_a by_o degree_n mount_v unto_o god_n or_o as_o s._n augustine_n 10._o augustine_n august_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la cap._n 10._o say_v ducitur_fw-la pedetentim_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la gradibus_fw-la ad_fw-la summâ_fw-la penetralia_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o ladder_n be_v this_o &_o the_o ascend_a by_o it_o in_o this_o sort_n what_o deo_fw-la what_o tertull._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 21._o &_o 37._o nos_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n apostoli_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la christus_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la i_o believe_v i_o receive_v from_o the_o present_a church_n the_o present_a from_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o primitive_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n and_o christ_n from_o god_n god_n the_o prime_a verity_n from_o no_o other_o fountain_n different_a from_o his_o own_o infallible_a knowledge_n so_o that_o who_o so_o cleave_v not_o to_o the_o present_a church_n firm_o believe_v the_o tradition_n thereof_o as_o be_v come_v down_o by_o succession_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o on_o the_o low_a step_n of_o the_o ladder_n that_o lead_v unto_o god_n the_o revealer_n of_o save_v truth_n successive_a tradition_n unwritten_a be_v the_o last_o and_o final_a ground_n whereon_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o belief_n truth_n belief_n note_v the_o jesuit_n do_v not_o say_v tradition_n be_v the_o last_o ground_n on_o which_o we_o believe_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v save_v truth_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o only_o that_o it_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n so_o mount_v up_o by_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o god_n and_o by_o he_o unto_o all_o necessary_a truth_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n this_o i_o prove_v by_o these_o four_o it_o four_o these_o argument_n as_o they_o convince_v there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v but_o christian_a tradition_n so_o they_o consequent_o convince_v that_o if_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v save_v truth_n god_n must_v assist_v this_o perpetual_a catholic_a tradition_n thereof_o that_o no_o error_n creep_v into_o it_o argument_n the_o first_o argument_n if_o the_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v apostolical_a because_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v believe_v to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o voice_n of_o perpetual_a tradition_n unwritten_a then_o our_o resolution_n that_o our_o faith_n be_v apostolical_a stay_v last_o and_o final_o upon_o tradition_n unwritten_a but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n but_o by_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n unwritten_a conserve_v in_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n for_o what_o other_o proof_n can_v be_v imagine_v except_o one_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o unknown_a the_o the_o minister_n pag._n 19_o to_o title_n add_v inscription_n of_o some_o epistle_n subscription_n &_o insertion_n of_o name_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o book_n but_o neither_o be_v this_o true_a of_o all_o book_n nor_o of_o all_o epistle_n nor_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o satisfy_v a_o man_n for_o may_v not_o a_o counterfayte_n write_v a_o gospel_n for_o example_n in_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n repeat_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o book_n twenty_o time_n so_o it_o be_v childish_a to_o mention_v this_o as_o the_o last_o stay_n of_o persuasion_n for_o what_o more_o childish_a then_o to_o prove_v a_o thing_n unknown_a by_o another_o as_o much_o unknown_a title_n of_o the_o book_n which_o be_v absurd_a see_v doubt_n may_v be_v make_v whether_o those_o title_n be_v set_v on_o the_o book_n by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o of_o which_o doubt_v only_o tradition_n can_v resolve_v us._n beside_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n mark_v s._n luke_n as_o also_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v by_o any_o apostle_n but_o be_v by_o their_o lively_a voice_n and_o suffrage_n recommend_v unto_o christian_n as_o sacred_a &_o divine_a otherwise_o as_o also_o approbârunt_fw-la also_o bilson_n de_fw-fr perpetua_fw-la gubernation_n ecclesiae_fw-la pag._n 85._o historiae_fw-la illae_fw-la à_fw-la marco_n &_o luca_n exaratae_fw-la canonicam_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la suffragi●s_fw-la nactae_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la eas_fw-la lectas_fw-la approbârunt_fw-la m._n bilson_n note_v they_o shall_v never_o have_v obtain_v such_o eminent_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n neither_o shall_v they_o be_v now_o so_o esteem_v but_o upon_o the_o supposal_n of_o apostolical_a approbation_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n see_v these_o writing_n and_o recommend_v the_o same_o unto_o christian_a church_n but_o by_o tradition_n ergo_fw-la the_o last_o and_o high_a ground_n on_o which_o we_o believe_v what_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n sucecede_v they_o for_o we_o may_v distinguish_v three_o property_n of_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n
be_v sufficient_a for_o every_o man_n see_v the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o every_o man_n but_o express_o of_o he_o who_o be_v homo_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v one_o already_o full_o instruct_v and_o firm_o settle_v by_o tradition_n in_o all_o the_o main_n point_v of_o christian_a faith_n and_o godly_a life_n such_o a_o one_o as_o timothy_n be_v the_o scripture_n for_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n aforetaught_a and_o ground_v in_o faith_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_a who_o will_v deny_v it_o but_o this_o prove_v at_o the_o most_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n join_v with_o tradition_n not_o of_o scripture_n alone_o or_o of_o onely-onely-one_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n book_n in_o great_a letter_n very_o earnest_o affirm_v hence_o also_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o 34.35.36_o the_o the_o minister_n to_o prove_v scripture_n be_v clear_a unto_o infidel_n that_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n heap_n many_o testimony_n of_o father_n that_o teach_v scripture_n in_o some_o matter_n to_o be_v clear_a who_o deny_v this_o they_o be_v so_o to_o the_o faithful_a not_o unto_o infidel_n not_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v unsettle_a in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n yea_o many_o place_n he_o bring_v speak_v express_o only_a of_o the_o faithful_a &_o pious_a sicut_fw-la vera_fw-la religio_fw-la docet_fw-la accedunt_fw-la as_o s._n augustine_n &_o other_o by_o he_o allege_v affirm_v and_o therefore_o be_v bring_v impertinent_o to_o prove_v the_o sufficiency_n &_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o infidel_n pag._n 34.35.36_o many_o allegation_n of_o father_n which_o protestant_n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v clear_a in_o all_o substantial_a point_n be_v impertinent_a because_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o man_n aforehand_o instruct_v in_o all_o substantial_a point_n who_o may_v by_o the_o light_n of_o tradition_n easy_o discover_v they_o in_o scripture_n as_o they_o that_o hear_v aristotle_n explicate_v himself_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n may_v understand_v his_o book_n of_o nature_n most_o difficile_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o they_o that_o never_o hear_v his_o explication_n either_o out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n or_o by_o tradition_n of_o his_o scholar_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o your_o most_o learned_a majesty_n sufficient_o demonstrate_v this_o first_o ground_n of_o catholic_a faith_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o christian_a be_v original_o and_o fundamental_o build_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o as_o write_v in_o scripture_n but_o as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n successive_o from_o the_o primitive_a upon_o the_o authority_n whereof_o we_o believe_v that_o both_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o substantial_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n thence_o further_o ascend_v &_o infer_v they_o come_v from_o christ_n and_o so_o from_o god_n the_o prime_a veracity_n &_o author_n of_o truth_n the_o second_o ground_n that_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n always_o in_o the_o world_n to_o who_o tradition_n man_n be_v to_o cleave_v that_o this_o church_n be_v one_o universal_a apostolical_a holy_a §._o 3._o this_o principle_n be_v consequent_a upon_o the_o former_a out_o of_o which_o six_o thing_n may_v be_v cler_o prove_v first_o that_o there_o be_v always_o a_o true_a apostle_n true_a the_o minister_n still_o come_v forth_o with_o his_o distinction_n that_o by_o church_n we_o may_v understand_v a_o hierarchy_n of_o mitre_a prelate_n &_o they_o he_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o church_n teach_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o world_n second_o for_o a_o number_n of_o believer_n small_a or_o great_a teach_v and_o profess_v the_o right_n say_v in_o all_o substantial_a point_n &_o then_o he_o grant_v there_o be_v still_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n this_o distinction_n so_o much_o repeat_v special_o pag._n 57_o and_o 58._o be_v impertinent_a for_o by_o church_n we_o understand_v not_o every_o small_a number_n of_o right_a believer_n but_o a_o christian_a multitude_n of_o such_o credit_n and_o authority_n as_o upon_o her_o tradition_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a what_o scripture_n &_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n for_o this_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v that_o so_o we_o may_v know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n and_o it_o can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v now_o whether_o this_o church_n be_v mitre_a or_o not_o mitre_a go_v in_o black_a or_o in_o white_a or_o in_o scarlet_a do_v little_a import_n let_v the_o minister_n but_o show_v we_o a_o church_n that_o have_v evident_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n &_o we_o will_v say_v she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n though_o she_o have_v no_o surplice_n or_o mitre_n but_o be_v as_o precise_a as_o geneva_n itself_o but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o this_o hierarchy_n of_o mitre_a prelate_n who_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n can_v assure_v man_n which_o be_v the_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n man_n ought_v not_o to_o bear_v such_o spleen_n against_o a_o mitre_n or_o corner-cap_n or_o surplice_n as_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o to_o fly_v from_o the_o church_n that_o only_o have_v catholic_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n for_o man_n to_o know_v that_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o substantial_a article_n come_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o god_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o all_o age_n a_o church_n receive_v and_o deliver_v these_o tradition_n else_o man_n in_o some_o age_n since_o christ_n shall_v have_v be_v destitute_a of_o the_o apostle_n the_o the_o minister_n pa._n 59_o lin_v 15._o say_v a_o corrupt_a church_n may_v deliver_v uncorrupt_o some_o part_n of_o sacred_a truth_n as_o the_o scripture_n and_o creed_n by_o which_o man_n may_v be_v save_v answer_n we_o may_v conceive_v two_o way_n of_o deliver_v a_o incorrupt_a text_n the_o one_o casual_a &_o by_o chance_n and_o so_o a_o corrupt_a church_n yea_o a_o jew_n a_o infidel_n a_o child_n may_v deliver_v a_o uncorrupt_a copy_n of_o the_o bible_n the_o other_o authentic_a assure_v the_o receiver_n this_o to_o be_v the_o incorrupt_a text_n of_o the_o apostle_n scripture_n and_o bind_v he_o so_o to_o believe_v this_o authentik_a and_o irrefragable_a tradition_n can_v be_v make_v by_o a_o false_a church_n err_v in_o her_o tradition_n as_o be_v clear_a now_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o man_n not_o only_o casual_o have_v the_o true_a scripture_n but_o must_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o text_n thereof_o be_v incorrupt_a therefore_o there_o must_v be_v still_o a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n who_o tradition_n be_v authentic_a that_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n upon_o which_o man_n must_v believe_v doctrine_n to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n because_o they_o have_v not_o mean_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o substantial_a article_n of_o christianity_n without_o assure_a faith_n whereof_o no_o man_n be_v save_v second_o this_o church_n must_v be_v always_o obstinate_a always_o the_o minister_n pag._n 61._o lin_v 15_o &_o lin_v 26._o object_n that_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v repute_v a_o impious_a sect_n by_o the_o multitude_n and_o so_o not_o be_v know_v by_o the_o notion_n of_o true_a and_o holy_a nor_o can_v her_o truth_n be_v discern_v by_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n i_o answer_v as_o there_o be_v four_o property_n of_o church-doctrin_n so_o likewise_o there_o be_v four_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o be_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o the_o save_a truth_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o the_o natural_a understanding_n both_o of_o man_n and_o angel_n for_o god_n only_o &_o his_o bless_a see_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o second_o be_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o doctrine_n true_o reveal_v by_o secret_a inspiration_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n ordinary_o speak_v the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o almost_o all_o man_n that_o be_v or_o ever_o be_v the_o apostle_n only_o and_o the_o prophet_n except_v the_o three_o to_o be_v mistress_n of_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o their_o miraculous_a preach_v plant_v in_o the_o world_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v visible_a to_o the_o first_o and_o primitive_a world_n but_o now_o be_v not_o the_o four_o to_o be_v mistress_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n that_o be_v of_o doctrine_n deliver_v and_o receive_v by_o full_a tradition_n and_o profession_n all_o the_o adversaries_n thereof_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o
christian_a divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o notorious_a changer_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a &_o sensible_a to_o all_o man_n even_o unto_o her_o very_a enemy_n for_o not_o only_a jew_n and_o infidel_n but_o even_o heretic_n know_v in_o their_o conscience_n and_o sometime_o acknowledge_v in_o word_n that_o the_o church_n be_v true_o catholic_a so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n of_o catholic_a be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n the_o world_n have_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n they_o that_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n which_o religion_n be_v catholic_a may_v easy_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a to_o common_a reason_n that_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n clear_a by_o common_a discourse_n that_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a preach_v be_v of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n be_v the_o prime_a verity_n his_o doctrine_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o notion_n of_o catholic_a be_v hide_v and_o the_o light_n thereof_o lose_v there_o be_v no_o ordinary_a mean_n leave_v for_o man_n to_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v nor_o consequent_o what_o god_n by_o inspiration_n reveal_v unto_o they_o we_o must_v begin_v again_o anew_o from_o a_o second_o fountain_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n from_o god_n and_o build_v upon_o the_o new_a plant_n of_o religion_n with_o miracle_n in_o the_o world_n by_o some_o recent_a prophet_n and_o if_o this_o be_v absurd_a then_o there_o must_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o church_n who_o tradition_n be_v illustrious_o catholic_a and_o consequent_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n unto_o all_o man_n that_o will_v not_o be_v obstinate_a visible_a and_o conspicuous_a for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n must_v ever_o be_v famous_a glorious_a and_o most_o notorious_o know_v in_o the_o world_n that_o a_o christian_n may_v true_o say_v with_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la cred_a c._n 17._o i_o believe_v nothing_o but_o the_o consent_n of_o nation_n and_o country_n and_o most_o celebrious_a fame_n now_o if_o the_o church_n be_v hide_v secret_a invisible_a in_o any_o age_n than_o her_o tradition_n can_v not_o be_v doctrine_n ever_o illustrious_o know_v but_o rather_o obscure_a hide_a apocryphal_a ergo_fw-la the_o church_n the_o mistress_n pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a which_o if_o need_v be_v may_v be_v further_o prove_v most_o evident_o three_o that_o this_o church_n be_v apostolical_a and_o that_o apparent_o descend_v from_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n last_o bishop_n the_o church_n that_o have_v a_o lineal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n famous_a and_o illustrious_a whereof_o not_o one_o have_v be_v opposite_a in_o religion_n to_o his_o immediate_a predecessor_n prove_v evident_o that_o this_o church_n have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o as_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o 300._o stone_n range_v in_o order_n if_o no_o two_o stone_n be_v find_v in_o that_o line_n of_o different_a colour_n then_o if_o the_o first_o be_v white_a the_o second_o be_v white_a so_o the_o rest_n unto_o the_o last_o even_o so_o if_o there_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o 300._o bishop_n all_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n if_o the_o first_o have_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o peter_n the_o second_o likewise_o have_v the_o same_o and_o so_o the_o rest_n even_o until_o the_o last_o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la confessionem_fw-la generis_fw-la humani_fw-la even_o to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o humane_a kind_n as_o s._n augustine_n l._n the_o util_a cred._n cap._n 17._o speak_v for_o how_o can_v the_o tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v eminent_o and_o notorious_o apostolical_a if_o the_o church_n deliver_v the_o same_o have_v not_o a_o it_o a_o the_o minister_n say_v p._n 67._o circa_fw-la finem_fw-la that_o this_o note_n of_o succession_n make_v nothing_o against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o their_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n be_v able_a to_o exhibit_v a_o pedigree_n or_o derivation_n both_o of_o their_o ministry_n and_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v ridiculous_a for_o if_o they_o can_v real_o exhibit_v such_o a_o pedigree_n and_o derivation_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o all_o age_n from_o christ_n to_o luther_n why_o do_v they_o still_o keep_v we_o in_o suspense_n and_o never_o exhibit_v the_o same_o which_o we_o so_o earnest_o beg_v at_o their_o hand_n let_v they_o but_o name_v the_o church_n or_o pastor_n that_o do_v commit_v unto_o luther_n the_o ministry_n of_o preach_v his_o doctrine_n against_o the_o roman_a religion_n the_o roman_a church_n make_v he_o priest_n &_o give_v he_o commission_n to_o preach_v her_o doctrine_n but_o to_o preach_v against_o her_o religion_n who_o give_v he_o order_n that_o commission_n to_o preach_v see_v he_o have_v it_o not_o from_o any_o church_n as_o be_v manifest_a he_o have_v it_o either_o from_o himself_o coin_v a_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o head_n out_o of_o scripture_n understand_v in_o his_o own_o manner_n or_o from_o satan_n with_o who_o he_o confer_v and_o unto_o who_o argument_n he_o yield_v as_o himself_o do_v witness_n tom._n 7._o wittenberg_n fol._n 228._o or_o else_o immediate_o from_o god_n and_o then_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v make_v this_o immediate_a revelation_n know_v by_o miracle_n let_v not_o minister_n therefore_o idle_o say_v we_o can_v exhibit_v a_o pedigree_n feed_v we_o with_o word_n but_o afford_v we_o present_a payment_n of_o so_o long_a a_o exact_v debt_n if_o they_o know_v the_o pedigree_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o labour_n be_v not_o great_a to_o write_v the_o name_n of_o their_o ancestor_n in_o every_o age_n that_o do_v they_o may_v rest_v for_o if_o we_o can_v demonstrate_v that_o these_o their_o pretend_a ancestor_n be_v either_o catholic_a roman_n or_o else_o opposite_a one_o to_o another_o in_o substantial_a point_n and_o this_o by_o as_o authentic_a record_n as_o they_o do_v to_o prove_v they_o hold_v some_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o victory_n shall_v be_v they_o be_v it_o possible_a they_o shall_v thus_o delude_v man_n by_o say_v we_o can_v exhibit_v and_o yet_o never_o do_v it_o manifest_a and_o conspicuous_a pedigree_n or_o derivation_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o convince_a argument_n use_v by_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n epist._n 48._o circa_fw-la medium_n how_o can_v we_o think_v that_o we_o have_v receive_v manifest_o christ_n if_o we_o have_v not_o also_o receive_v manifest_o his_o church_n it_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o philosophy_n propter_fw-la quod_fw-la unum_fw-la quodque_fw-la tale_n &_o illud_fw-la magis_fw-la but_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n his_o glory_n his_o virtue_n his_o miracle_n be_v to_o the_o world_n famous_o know_v from_o age_n to_o age_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n &_o her_o preach_n who_o in_o her_o first_o pastor_n see_v he_o with_o their_o eye_n ergo_fw-la this_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v more_o famous_a more_o illustrious_a as_o able_a to_o give_v fame_n even_o unto_o the_o being_n and_o doctrine_n and_o action_n of_o christ._n four_o this_o church_n be_v one_o that_o be_v all_o the_o pastor_n see_v pastor_n the_o minister_n pag._n 108._o lin_v 14._o allege_v the_o difference_n among_o schoolman_n particular_o betwixt_o dominican_n &_o jesuit_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o explicate_v the_o efficacy_n of_o grace_n as_o a_o argument_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n want_v unity_n of_o faith_n as_o much_o as_o protestant_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v idle_a these_o difference_n not_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o scholman_n shall_v preach_v different_a doctrine_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n condemn_v each_o other_o as_o heretic_n and_o the_o church_n this_o notwithstanding_o shall_v allow_v of_o both_o side_n as_o her_o child_n than_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n disunion_n in_o faith_n but_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o allow_v such_o dissonant_n preacher_n only_o she_o permit_v they_o to_o differ_v in_o matter_n they_o teach_v as_o great_a probability_n and_o private_a opinion_n if_o any_o preach_v their_o private_a probability_n as_o doctrine_n and_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n condemn_v other_o as_o heretic_n except_o they_o recall_v their_o censure_n the_o roman_a church_n shut_v they_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n not_o permit_v disunion_n in_o faith_n for_o such_o permittance_n will_v utter_o discredit_v the_o authority_n of_o her_o preach_n &_o show_v that_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n she_o be_v a_o church_n to_o be_v believe_v no_o further_o they_o see_v and_o preacher_n thereof_o deliver_v and_o consequent_o all_o her_o professor_n and_o child_n believe_v one_o &_o the_o same_o faith_n for_o if_o the_o preacher_n and_o pastor_n
old_a father_n meaning_n the_o father_n o●_n the_o old_a testament_n not_o of_o the_o new_a whi●●_n appear_v because_o in_o proof_n of_o his_o say_n 〈◊〉_d bring_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o say_v of_o the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 250._o lin_v 11._o that_o polidore_n name_v gregory_n among_o the_o old_a father_n that_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n as_o hierome_n do_v witness_n answer_n this_o be_v false_a and_o impossible_a for_o gregory_n live_v all_o most_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n hierome_n how_o can_v he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o old_a father_n who_o s._n hierome_n witness_v to_o have_v condemn_v image-worship_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n gregory_n they_o be_v name_v by_o polidore_n not_o among_o the_o old_a father_n but_o as_o one_o of_o the_o new_a father_n that_o be_v father_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o seem_v to_o speak_v against_o image-worship_n but_o in_o truth_n do_v not_o as_o have_v be_v say_v any_o father_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o only_o of_o the_o old_a as_o of_o moses_n david_n hieremy_n and_o other_o prophet_n and_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a chapter_n be_v to_o declare_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o father_n mislike_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n of_o god_n be_v because_o they_o can_v not_o paint_v he_o aright_o cùm_fw-la deum_fw-la nemo_fw-la vidisset_fw-la unquam_fw-la because_o than_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n adore_v god_n the_o minister_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n at_o least_o may_v have_v adore_v the_o image_n of_o prophet_n if_o such_o adoration_n have_v be_v lawful_a as_o the_o papist_n hold_v answer_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n i_o argue_v the_o jew_n may_v have_v make_v the_o image_n of_o their_o holy_a prophet_n if_o the_o make_n of_o they_o have_v be_v lawful_a as_o protestant_n hold_v let_v the_o minister_n prove_v by_o god_n word_n they_o make_v they_o &_o i_o will_v prove_v they_o worship_v they_o let_v he_o i_o say_v show_v that_o image_n of_o prophet_n be_v set_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o prophecy_n as_o he_o be_v set_v in_o the_o frontispiece_n of_o this_o his_o reply_n and_o i_o promise_v he_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o be_v honour_v this_o be_v the_o thing_n whereof_o we_o require_v example_n in_o scripture_n and_o wherein_o the_o minister_n be_v as_o dumb_a as_o a_o fish_n not_o able_a to_o show_v one_o proper_a image_n of_o a_o adore_a person_n lawful_o make_v that_o may_v not_o lawful_o be_v adore_v afterward_o god_n say_v polidore_n have_v take_v flesh_n and_o be_v become_v visible_a to_o mortal_a eye_n man_n flock_v to_o he_o and_o do_v without_o doubt_n behold_v and_o reverence_v his_o face_n shine_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o divine_a light_n and_o even_o then_o they_o begin_v to_o paint_v or_o carve_v his_o image_n already_o imprint_v in_o their_o mind_n and_o these_o image_n they_o receive_v with_o great_a worship_n and_o veneration_n as_o be_v reason_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o original_n as_o basill_n write_v which_o custom_n of_o adore_a image_n the_o father_n be_v so_o far_o from_o reprove_v as_o they_o do_v not_o only_o admit_v thereof_o but_o also_o decree_v and_o command_v the_o same_o by_o general_n counsel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o four_o and_o justinian_n the_o second_o his_o son_n and_o therefore_o what_o man_n be_v there_o so_o dissolute_a &_o audacious_a as_o can_v dream_v of_o the_o contrary_a and_o doubt_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o worship_n establish_v so_o long_o ago_o by_o decree_n of_o most_o holy_a father_n thus_o write_v polidore_n and_o much_o more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o very_a place_n where_o the_o minister_n cit_v he_o to_o the_o contrary_a which_o show_v how_o notorious_o his_o credulous_a reader_n be_v abuse_v in_o matter_n of_o most_o moment_n hence_o appear_v the_o three_o falsehood_n that_o in_o gregorye_n day_n image_n begin_v to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o church_n which_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n long_o before_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n basill_n paulinus_n lactantius_n and_o tertullian_n do_v sufficient_o witness_v neither_o can_v our_o adversary_n bring_v any_o clear_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n against_o this_o custom_n for_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n truth_n council_n the_o minister_n say_v that_o some_o pontifician_n grant_v that_o this_o council_n forbid_v the_o make_n of_o image_n so_o clear_o be_v their_o decree_n against_o they_o i_o answer_v such_o author_n have_v no_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v so_o persuade_v of_o this_o council_n but_o only_o the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n now_o the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n be_v not_o clear_a yea_o they_o can_v admit_v that_o sense_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o follow_v as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v demonstrate_v in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o minister_n to_o frame_v a_o argument_n out_o of_o this_o decree_n be_v force_v ridiculous_o to_o curtail_v the_o text_n &_o take_v some_o few_o word_n leave_v the_o rest_n such_o be_v his_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n of_o eliberis_n that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v or_o adore_v be_v paint_v on_o wall_n which_o the_o minister_n weigh_v pag._n 345._o much_o urge_v clear_o signifi_v the_o contrary_a for_o may_v not_o image_n paint_v on_o table_n be_v in_o church_n and_o yet_o neither_o make_v in_o the_o church_n nor_o paint_v on_o wall_n which_o kind_n of_o image_n the_o council_n do_v not_o forbid_v and_o why_o do_v the_o council_n forbid_v image_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n as_o pertinent_a to_o the_o fabric_n thereof_o or_o to_o be_v paint_v on_o wall_n but_o out_o of_o reverence_n unto_o image_n for_o they_o be_v holy_a thing_n and_o so_o to_o be_v honour_v for_o their_o prototype_n sake_n the_o council_n think_v it_o unworthy_a of_o their_o dignity_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v on_o wall_n where_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v deface_v and_o deform_v and_o by_o persecutor_n for_o that_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n abuse_v he_o do_v also_o way_n pag._n 345._o much_o insist_v upon_o epiphanius_n epist_n ad_fw-la joan._n hicrosol_n but_o relate_v according_a to_o his_o fashion_n both_o his_o fact_n &_o word_n unsincere_o epiphanius_n say_v he_o find_v a_o image_n paint_v on_o a_o cloth_n hang_v in_o a_o church_n rend_v it_o down_o and_o say_v it_o be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o any_o image_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n thus_o he_o unsincere_o as_o i_o say_v not_o expressinge_v what_o kind_n of_o image_n that_o be_v that_o epiphanius_n rend_v in_o piece_n for_o epiphanius_n say_v cùm_fw-la invenissem_fw-la imaginem_fw-la hominis_fw-la pendentem_fw-la in_o e●cl_n sit_fw-la tanquam_fw-la christi_fw-la aut_fw-la alicuius_fw-la sancti_fw-la n●scio_fw-la enim_fw-la cvius_fw-la erat_fw-la when_o i_o have_v find_v a_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o christ_n or_o some_o saint_n for_o i_o know_v not_o of_o who_o the_o image_n be_v epiphanius_n mutaret_fw-la epiphanius_n here_o the_o minister_n rayl_v most_o intolerable_o cry_v that_o the_o testimony_n be_v clear_a but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o endeavour_n to_o answer_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n that_o be_v demonstrative_a as_o much_o as_o any_o can_v be_v in_o this_o kind_n of_o matter_n the_o minister_n argument_n on_o the_o other_o side_n have_v no_o force_n at_o all_o be_v two_o propose_v in_o a_o double_a interrogation_n if_o say_v he_o pag._n 254._o lin_v 2._o epiphanius_n himself_o do_v not_o remember_v who_o image_n it_o be_v whether_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o a_o saint_n or_o of_o some_o profane_a man_n how_o know_v this_o jesuite_n that_o it_o be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o profane_a person_n i_o answer_v that_o epiphanius_n do_v know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n image_n nor_o any_o saint_n but_o some_o profane_v person_n though_o he_o know_v not_o determinate_o what_o profane_a person_n the_o same_o be_v for_o epiphanius_n will_v not_o have_v urge_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o hang_v that_o image_n in_o the_o church_n in_o regard_n it_o be_v a_o man_n image_n have_v he_o not_o understand_v a_o profane_a man_n hence_o his_o second_o interrogation_n be_v answer_v why_o be_v epiphanius_n silent_a and_o do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v some_o profane_a man_n answer_n epiphanius_n be_v not_o silent_a that_o the_o image_n he_o tear_v in_o piece_n be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o profane_a man_n see_v he_o term_v it_o the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o christ_n or_o some_o saint_n and_o this_o the_o complayner_n know_v well_o enough_o for_o if_o this_o picture_n have_v be_v christ_n or_o some_o
the_o creed_n and_o prime_a principle_n of_o christianity_n in_o plain_a and_o catechisticall_a manner_n beside_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o keep_v her_o child_n from_o believe_v that_o image_n be_v god_n or_o true_a live_a thing_n or_o that_o any_o divinity_n or_o divine_a virtue_n reside_v in_o they_o as_o may_v be_v prove_v convince_o in_o my_o judgement_n by_o experience_n have_v of_o her_o power_n in_o this_o kind_n about_o a_o point_n more_o difficile_a for_o what_o may_v seem_v more_o evident_a than_o that_o a_o consecrate_a host_n be_v bread_n of_o which_o four_o sense_n sight_n feeling_n smell_v taste_n give_v in_o evidence_n as_o of_o bread_n no_o less_o very_o they_o any_o other_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v discern_v and_o yet_o so_o potent_a be_v the_o word_n &_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n ground_v on_o general_a counsel_n declare_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o transubstantiation_n as_o catholic_n deny_v their_o sense_n believe_v assure_o that_o what_o seem_v bread_n be_v not_o bread_n but_o the_o true_a body_n of_o our_o saviour_n under_o the_o form_n of_o accident_n of_o bread_n now_o can_v any_o man_n with_o any_o show_n of_o the_o least_o probability_n in_o the_o world_n think_v that_o it_o be_v difficile_a for_o this_o church_n to_o persuade_v her_o child_n that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o live_a thing_n nor_o have_v any_o godhead_n or_o live_v divine_a power_n lodge_v in_o it_o as_o plain_a scripture_n show_v and_o general_n catholic_a counsel_n particular_o the_o tridentine_n sess_v 25._o and_o the_o nicene_n act_n 7._o define_v which_o doctrine_n neither_o reason_n nor_o sense_n can_v mislike_v or_o shall_v the_o sole_a similitude_n of_o member_n correspondent_a unto_o humane_a live_a member_n which_o image_n have_v so_o much_o prevail_v in_o catholic_a mind_n so_o to_o bow_v down_o their_o thought_n to_o base_a idolatry_n as_o to_o think_v a_o stock_n or_o a_o stone_n to_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a by_o her_o teach_n to_o direct_v they_o to_o a_o more_o high_a &_o divine_a apprehension_n be_v able_a to_o make_v they_o firm_o believe_v a_o consecrate_a host_n be_v not_o bread_n against_o the_o judgement_n that_o they_o will_v otherwise_o frame_v upon_o most_o notorious_a evidency_n of_o sense_n the_o protestant_n church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v no_o great_a vigour_n by_o preach_v to_o persuade_v common_a people_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o anthropomorphits_n see_v their_o principle_n be_v that_o a_o world_n of_o preacher_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v against_o the_o evident_a scripture_n yea_o 4._o yea_o here_o the_o minister_n be_v bitter_a saying_n p._n 277._o lin_v 30._o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o papist_n to_o deal_v sincere_o that_o his_o brother_n m._n john_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o every_o private_a man_n nor_o any_o company_n of_o people_n but_o that_o one_o michaia_n one_o stephen_n one_o athanasius_n with_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n in_o mouth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v against_o 4._o hundred_o baalite_n i_o answer_v the_o minister_n deny_v his_o brother_n speak_v of_o every_o particular_a man_n shall_v receive_v his_o doom_n by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o brother_n own_o mouth_n tell_v he_o the_o contrary_a who_o thus_o write_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o jesuite_n to_o wit_n way_n pag._n 126._o lin_v 12._o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o necessary_a for_o every_o particular_a man_n to_o try_v all_o thing_n and_o by_o the_o scripture_n to_o examine_v and_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o thing_n the_o church_n teach_v he_o and_o when_o a_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n reject_v the_o teach_n of_o a_o church_n as_o great_a and_o good_a as_o the_o roman_a catholic_a his_o judgement_n therein_o be_v not_o private_a as_o private_a be_v oppose_v to_o spiritval_n nor_o say_v he_o pag._n 128._o lin_v 2._o be_v it_o impossible_a for_o a_o private_a man_n to_o espy_v a_o error_n in_o the_o best_a church_n that_o be_v and_o pa._n 150._o lin_v 18._o whereas_o the_o catholics_n answer_n that_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n try_v the_o spirit_n do_v not_o allow_v every_o man_n to_o do_v this_o but_o only_a pastor_n the_o minister_n repli_v this_o be_v all_o false_a for_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n john_n speak_v indifferent_o of_o all_o man_n every_o man_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o try_v spirit_n that_o epistle_n be_v direct_v not_o to_o the_o clergy_n but_o to_o the_o people_z and_o the_o reason_n add_v show_v that_o the_o people_z be_v they_o that_o must_v try_v spirit_n for_o they_o must_v try_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v seduce_v by_o false_a prophet_n and_o such_o be_v the_o people_z and_o therefore_o they_o must_v examine_v they_o all_o these_o be_v his_o brother_n johns_n word_n now_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v whether_o john_n white_a do_v not_o hold_v that_o not_o only_o extraordinary_a prophet_n as_o michaeas_n &_o stephen_n not_o only_o chief_a patriarch_n as_o athanasius_n but_o that_o every_o particular_a man_n of_o the_o people_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o condemn_v as_o great_a a_o church_n as_o the_o protestant_n if_o by_o his_o spiritual_a exposition_n or_o by_o the_o spirit_n he_o be_v move_v so_o to_o do_v what_o reason_n then_o have_v our_o minister_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o allegation_n to_o be_v so_o bitter_a as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a ●or_a papist_n to_o deal_v sincere_o very_o m._n francis_n have_v you_o as_o much_o natural_a understanding_n together_o with_o knowledge_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o have_v your_o brother_n john_n you_o will_v see_v this_o doctrine_n that_o every_o private_a man_n be_v by_o divine_a order_n and_o institution_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o church_n how_o absurd_a soever_o to_o be_v necessary_o consequent_a of_o the_o protestant_a principle_n that_o every_o man_n must_v final_o resolve_v his_o faith_n into_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n yea_o i_o can_v show_v how_o yourself_o even_o in_o this_o reply_n have_v give_v this_o authority_n of_o judge_v the_o church_n unto_o every_o private_a man_n as_o may_v partly_o appear_v by_o the_o censure_n sect_n 4._o that_o a_o common_a ordinary_a man_n by_o scripture_n may_v oppose_v as_o great_a and_o great_a church_n then_o be_v the_o whole_a protestant_n doctor_n white_a in_o his_o way_n pag._n 59_o which_o principle_n be_v lay_v how_o will_v they_o convince_v people_n that_o god_n be_v a_o pure_a spirit_n who_o the_o scripture_n do_v so_o perpetual_o set_v forth_o as_o have_v humane_a member_n i_o may_v conclude_v therefore_o that_o their_o translate_n scripture_n into_o their_o vulgar_a language_n breed_v more_o danger_n unto_o common_a people_n than_o our_o make_n of_o image_n but_o they_o will_v say_v the_o translation_n of_o scripture_n into_o vulgar_a language_n be_v command_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o apostolical_a church_n practise_v it_o whereas_o we_o can_v prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v warrant_n or_o practice_v the_o set_n up_o of_o image_n this_o they_o say_v with_o great_a confidence_n but_o any_o substantial_a proof_n of_o this_o their_o say_n i_o can_v never_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o testimony_n they_o bring_v in_o this_o behalf_n search_v the_o scripture_n let_v his_o word_n dwell_v plentiful_o among_o you_o etc._n etc._n be_v insufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o direct_a and_o express_v precept_n or_o practice_n of_o translate_n scripture_n into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n catholic_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n though_o they_o boast_v not_o of_o scripture_n as_o know_v that_o nothing_o be_v so_o clear_o set_v down_o in_o it_o but_o malapert_a error_n may_v contend_v against_o it_o with_o some_o show_n of_o probability_n yet_o have_v scripture_n much_o more_o clear_a and_o express_v then_o any_o that_o protestant_n can_v bring_v for_o themselves_o even_o about_o the_o use_n of_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_v in_o the_o first_o apostolical_a church_n s._n paul_n to_o the_o galatian_n c._n 3._o v._n 1._o say_v o_o you_o foolish_a galathian_o who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o obey_v the_o truth_n before_o who_o eye_n christ_n jesus_n be_v lively_o set_v forth_o crucify_a among_o you_o the_o greek_a word_n correspond_v to_o the_o english_a lively_o set_v forth_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v to_o paint_v forth_o a_o thing_n in_o so_o much_o as_o even_o beza_n translate_v jesus_n christus_fw-la depictus_fw-la c●ucifixus_n jesus_n christ_n paint_v or_o picture_v crucify_v before_o your_o eye_n so_o that_o we_o have_v in_o plain_a and_o express_v term_n that_o christ_n be_v picture_v as_o crucify_a in_o the_o apostolical_a church_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v
christian_n behave_v themselves_o towards_o it_o say_v flecte_fw-la genus_fw-la lignumque_fw-la crucis_fw-la venerabile_fw-la adora_fw-la bow_v knee_n adore_v the_o cross_n sacred_a wood_n origen_n homil._n 6._o in_o epist._n ad_fw-la rom._n so_o great_a be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o if_o it_o be_v place_v before_o the_o eye_n and_o faithful_o retain_v in_o mind_n fix_v upon_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o army_n of_o sin_n &_o flesh_n be_v conquer_v s._n gregory_n call_v illuminator_fw-la who_o convert_v armenia_n do_v as_o euthim._n panop_n part_n 3._o tit_n 20._o relate_v place_v wooden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o the_o shrine_n of_o martyr_n bid_v the_o multitude_n of_o people_n that_o thither_o resort_v to_o give_v worship_n unto_o god_n by_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o crosse._n s._n procopius_n martyr_n as_o do_v witness_n nicephorus_n l._n 7._o c._n 15._o do_v adore_v a_o golden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n crucify_v &_o by_o it_o get_v great_a victory_n in_o the_o second_o age_n in_o the_o beginning_n whereof_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n live_v tertull._n in_o apol._n c._n 44._o writing_n against_o heathen_n that_o object_v that_o christian_n be_v worshipper_n of_o the_o wooden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n grant_n the_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a &_o defend_v the_o same_o yea_o the_o protestant_a magdeburgians_n centur._n 5._o c._n 6._o acknowledge_v that_o such_o cross_n of_o wood_n be_v then_o among_o christian_n frequent_o use_v &_o set_v up_o in_o church_n s._n ignatius_n epist_n ad_fw-la philip._n do_v acknowledge_v divine_a power_n &_o virtue_n in_o the_o image_n of_o the_o crosse._n it_o be_v say_v he_o the_o victorious_a trophy_n or_o the_o monument_n of_o christ_n victory_n against_o the_o devil_n quod_fw-la ubi_fw-la viderit_fw-la horret_fw-la s._n martial_a epist._n ad_fw-la burdeg_n l._n 8._o exhort_v christian_n still_o to_o have_v the_o cross_n before_o they_o in_o ment_fw-la in_o over_o in_fw-la signo_fw-la in_o mind_n in_o mouth_n in_o the_o image_n thereof_o this_o be_v the_o invincible_a armour_n of_o a_o christian_a against_o satan_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v ever_o famous_a in_o the_o christian_a church_n whereof_o one_o be_v cite_v in_o 2._o nicen_n synod_n which_o say_v let_v not_o the_o faithful_a be_v deceyve_v by_o idol_n but_o paint_v the_o divine_a humane_a unmingled_a image_n of_o the_o true_a god_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n &_o of_o his_o servant_n against_o pagan_n &_o jew_n that_o so_o they_o neither_o go_v astray_o unto_o idol_n nor_o be_v like_o the_o jew_n final_o that_o these_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_v be_v use_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n by_o their_o allowance_n the_o jesuite_n prove_v by_o the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o 3.1_o so_o clear_o as_o you_o be_v force_v to_o say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o signify_v to_o depaint_v against_o all_o lexicon_n against_o the_o principal_a protestant_n that_o so_o translate_v yea_o against_o yourself_o and_o yet_o you_o wonder_v at_o your_o adversary_n wondrous_a weakness_n the_o second_o and_z third_z point_n 2._o praying_n &_o offer_v oblation_n to_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n 3._o worship_v &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n i_o have_v join_v these_o two_o controversye_n together_o hope_v i_o may_v do_v it_o with_o your_o majesty_n good_a like_n the_o main_a difficulty_n of_o they_o both_o be_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n for_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v that_o if_o your_o majesty_n do_v allow_v of_o invocation_n of_o any_o saint_n you_o will_v never_o deny_v that_o devotion_n unto_o the_o b._n virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n 402._o opera_fw-la regius_fw-la respon_n ad_fw-la ep_n card._n peron_n p._n 402._o who_o you_o honour_v and_o reverence_n above_o the_o rest_n though_o perchance_o you_o may_v dislike_v some_o particular_a form_n of_o our_o prayer_n that_o seem_v to_o give_v her_o title_n above_o that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o a_o creature_n about_o which_o i_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n endeavour_v to_o give_v your_o majesty_n satisfaction_n in_o which_o question_n i_o will_v suppose_v without_o large_a and_o particular_a proof_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v it_o by_o testimony_n undeniable_a if_o need_v be_v that_o worship_n &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n have_v be_v general_o receive_v in_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n at_o least_o ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n here_o the_o minister_n either_o out_o of_o ignorance_n or_o rather_o out_o of_o desire_n to_o outface_v the_o truth_n write_v in_o this_o sort_n pag._n 290._o you_o presuppose_v that_o which_o notwithstanding_o your_o outface_v you_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v universal_o receive_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n faith_n this_o discourse_n follow_v be_v a_o addition_n wherein_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n thus_o he_o wherefore_o aswell_o because_o the_o matter_n be_v important_a as_o also_o to_o take_v away_o this_o tergiversation_n i_o will_v here_o make_v good_a the_o answerers_n word_n and_o demonstrate_v that_o all_o the_o father_n some_o one_o way_n some_o another_o have_v testify_v to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n a_o eleven_o demonstration_n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_a church_n do_v ever_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n §_o 1._o to_o accomplish_v this_o more_o clear_o and_o with_o less_o tediousness_n unto_o the_o reader_n i_o shall_v reduce_v the_o father_n say_v unto_o a_o eleven_o head_n &_o which_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o eleven_o different_a argument_n &_o demonstration_n of_o this_o truth_n the_o first_o demonstration_n if_o the_o father_n hold_v the_o doctrine_n that_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v invocate_v &_o that_o man_n be_v aid_v by_o their_o merit_n as_o certain_a &_o infallible_a than_o they_o hold_v it_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o reveal_v truth_n for_o on_o what_o other_o ground_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v they_o pretend_v to_o hold_v it_o as_o certain_a the_o same_o not_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o father_n teach_v this_o doctrine_n as_o a_o matter_n certain_a and_o infallible_a &_o not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o by_o christian_n as_o their_o word_n declare_v s_o augustine_n adiwari_fw-la augustine_n augustine_n de_fw-fr cur●_n pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la cap._n 16._o illa_fw-la quaestio_fw-la vires_fw-la superat_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la meae_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la martyr_n opitulentur_fw-la ijs_fw-la quos_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la certum_fw-la est_fw-la adiwari_fw-la this_o question_n be_v beyond_o the_o reach_n of_o my_o knowledge_n how_o martyr_n help_v they_o who_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o help_v and_o again_o intercedunt_fw-la again_o idem_fw-la serm_n 244._o tunc_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la absque_fw-la ulla_fw-la dubitatione_n sancti_fw-la martyr_n intercedunt_fw-la then_o without_o any_o doubt_n the_o holy_a martyr_n intercede_v for_o we_o when_o they_o find_v in_o we_o some_o part_n of_o their_o virtue_n s._n ambrose_n facietis_fw-la ambrose_n ambros._n ser._n 91._o quid_fw-la non_fw-la credunt_fw-la utrum_fw-la quòd_fw-la à_fw-la martyribus_fw-la possunt_fw-la aliqui_fw-la visitari_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la christo_fw-la now_o credere_fw-la ipse_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la et_fw-la maiora_fw-la his_fw-la facietis_fw-la not_o to_o believe_v that_o martyr_n may_v visit_v and_o relieve_v man_n live_v in_o this_o world_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n see_v he_o say_v you_o shall_v do_v yet_o great_a thing_n nectarius_n speak_v unto_o saint_n theodore_n martyr_n tuis_fw-la martyr_n nectar_n orat_fw-la in_o primum_fw-la sabb._n sanctorum_fw-la jeiuniorum_fw-la in_o s._n theodorum_fw-la te_fw-la post_fw-la mortem_fw-la vivere_fw-la credimus_fw-la ut_fw-la ergo_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la vivis_fw-la &_o stas_fw-la prope_fw-la eum_fw-la precibus_fw-la tuis_fw-la propitium_fw-la eum_fw-la red_a famulis_fw-la tuis_fw-la we_o believe_v that_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o god_n a_o life_n without_o decay_n or_o end_n therefore_o as_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o christ_n &_o stand_v by_o he_o so_o make_v he_o by_o thy_o prayer_n propitious_a &_o merciful_a unto_o we_o thy_o servant_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o as_o certain_o as_o saint_n see_v god_n so_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o they_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o hear_v our_o prayer_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n doctrinâ_fw-la nazianzen_n gregory_n nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 26._o in_o patrem_fw-la suum_fw-la apostolium_n ferè_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la nec_fw-la dubito_fw-la quin_fw-la hoc_fw-la nunc_fw-la quoque_fw-la magis_fw-la faciat_fw-la postulatione_fw-la sva_fw-la quam_fw-la priùs_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o this_o bless_a saint_n in_o
theodos._n nor_o as_o the_o sanctifier_n of_o our_o soul_n dwell_v in_o the_o same_o by_o grace_n hierom_n in_o proverb_n c._n 2._o nullum_fw-la invocare_fw-la id●●_n intus_fw-la orando_fw-la vocare_fw-la nisi_fw-la deum_fw-la debemus_fw-la three_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o invocate_v saint_n by_o direct_a prayer_n in_o the_o lyturgy_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n the_o devotion_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v to_o god_n only_o augustine_n lib._n 22._o the_o civet_n c._n 10._o carthag_n 4._o c._n 23._o four_o that_o our_o friend_n that_o be_v decease_v do_v not_o now_o hear_v we_o in_o the_o familiar_a manner_n they_o be_v wont_v converse_v with_o us._n hierom._n ad_fw-la heliodor_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la nepotiam_fw-la whatsoever_o i_o write_v seem_v to_o be_v dead_a &_o 〈◊〉_d because_o nepotian_n do_v not_o hear_v it_o to_o wit_n i●_n visible_a manner_n delight_v therein_o and_o applaud_v the_o same_o as_o he_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v in_o his_o life-time_n 6._o life-time_n hence_o appear_v the_o impertinency_n of_o the_o minister_n that_o so_o often_o urge_v this_o place_n of_o s._n hierome_n pag._n 29.2_o lin_v 22._o orthodox_n pa._n 54._o li._n 6._o five_o that_o they_o do_v not_o know_v what_o be_v do_v in_o this_o world_n by_o their_o natural_a force_n augustine_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la c._n 16._o per_fw-la divinam_fw-la potentiam_fw-la martyr_n vivorum_fw-la rebus_fw-la intersunt_fw-la quoniam_fw-la defuncti_fw-la per_fw-la naturam_fw-la propriam_fw-la vivorum_fw-la rebus_fw-la interest_n non_fw-la possunt_fw-la six_o speak_v unto_o some_o decease_a person_n they_o make_v a_o if_o whether_o they_o hear_v they_o or_o not_o because_o they_o speak_v unto_o such_o as_o they_o know_v not_o certain_o to_o be_v saint_n nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 3._o in_o julian._n praise_n julian._n the_o minister_n here_o say_v do_v not_o the_o father_n reckon_v constantine_n to_o be_v in_o joy_n and_o glory_n and_o yet_o gregory_n nazianzen_n use_v a_o apostrophe_n to_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o great_a constantine_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o thing_n i_o answer_v you_o falsify_v the_o text_n of_o nazianzen_n both_o in_o the_o greek_a &_o in_o your_o english_a translation_n for_o his_o word_n be_v hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o great_a constantius_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o thing_n yea_o that_o we_o may_v see_v you_o corrupt_v the_o text_n wilful_o &_o against_o your_o conscience_n even_o in_o this_o very_a reply_n &_o in_o this_o point_n ●f_a controversy_n you_o cite_v the_o same_o pag._n 359._o light_v a._n in_o this_o manner_n audi_fw-la etiam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d constantij_fw-la magni_fw-la anima_fw-la siquis_fw-la mortuus_fw-la sensus_fw-la est_fw-la hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o ●reat_a constantius_n etc._n etc._n now_o constantius_n be_v a_o arian_n and_o a_o persecutor_n of_o catholic_n unto_o his_o die_a day_n though_o on_o his_o death_n bed_n it_o be_v say_v ●e_v make_v some_o kind_n of_o repentance_n hence_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n may_v doubt_v ●f_o his_o be_v in_o glory_n and_o say_v hear_v if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o ●●inges_n the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o funeral_n oration_n for_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n where_o he_o say_v sister_n admit_v of_o this_o oration_n in_o lieu_n of_o many_o funeral_n offering_n if_o this_o reward_n be_v give_v to_o holy_a soul_n to_o feel_v these_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_n of_o she_o hear_v his_o prayer_n but_o only_o whether_o she_o receive_v a_o humane_a natural_a content_n in_o that_o his_o affectuous_a panigyricall_a make_v in_o her_o praise_n this_o truth_n suppose_v i_o can_v but_o conceive_v that_o your_o majesty_n profess_v so_o much_o love_n to_o the_o first_o primitive_a age_n may_v deceive_v satisfaction_n about_o this_o point_n the_o cause_n of_o protestant_n dislike_n be_v weak_a and_o not_o to_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o strength_n of_o so_o long_o continue_v authority_n as_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v in_o their_o eight_o usual_a exception_n invocation_n of_o saint_n not_o to_o be_v dislike_v because_o not_o express_v in_o scripture_n §._o 2._o and_o first_o i_o must_v satisfy_v the_o transcendentall_a cause_n of_o their_o dislike_n rhem._n dislike_n confess_v august_n art_n 12._o fulke_o against_o rhem._n which_o be_v that_o worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n decease_v be_v not_o where_o express_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n without_o express_a warrant_n whereof_o nothing_o may_v lawful_o be_v do_v that_o belong_v to_o religion_n but_o this_o though_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o devotion_n in_o the_o conceit_n of_o common_a people_n be_v altogether_o unworthy_a of_o the_o erudition_n of_o any_o learned_a protestant_n for_o howsoever_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o separation_n they_o do_v mandato_fw-la do_v luther_n l_o de_fw-la seruo_fw-la arb_n &_o serm_n de_fw-fr cruse_n sive_fw-la expresso_fw-la dei_fw-la mandato_fw-la cry_v for_o express_v scripture_n express_v command_n o●_n the_o write_a word_n yet_o now_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d go_v 89._o go_v wotton_n in_o his_o trial_n pag._n 89._o from_o that_o principle_n as_o they_o be_v exceed_o angry_a 228._o angry_a john_n white_a in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 228._o with_o we_o that_o w●_n shall_v think_v that_o any_o of_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d any_o time_n broacher_n of_o such_o a_o absurdity_n wherefore_o in_o their_o write_a book_n wh●●_n they_o teach_v in_o pulpit_n i_o know_v not_o they_o 6._o they_o d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o whitaker_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scrip._n cont_n 1._o q._n 6._o disclaim_v from_o express_a scripture_n and_o think_v it_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n of_o a_o christ●●●_n custom_n that_o the_o same_o be_v scripture_n be_v note_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n and_o another_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n all_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o every_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v so_o ground_v on_o scripture_n that_o it_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n ground_v ●●_o scripture_n that_o be_v may_v be_v deduce_v by_o good_a discourse_n from_o truth_n reveal_v therein_o 〈◊〉_d be_v prove_v consonant_n to_o the_o rule_n &_o principle_n thereof_o according_a to_o which_o ample_a extent_n of_o scripture_n unto_o thing_n deducible_a from_o they_o or_o consonant_n unto_o they_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a custom_n that_o have_v not_o warrant_n in_o god_n word_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v this_o only_a we_o require_v that_o ignorant_a people_n be_v not_o judge_n of_o such_o inference_n a_o office_n so_o far_o above_o their_o capacity_n as_o i_o be_o persuade_v no_o unlearned_a man_n that_o have_v in_o he_o any_o spark_n of_o humility_n or_o any_o mediocrity_n of_o judgement_n will_v undertake_v it_o for_o no_o man_n be_v competent_a to_o judge_v assure_o of_o argument_n by_o deduction_n from_o scripture_n that_o have_v not_o exact_a skill_n of_o scripture_n to_o know_v the_o false_a sense_n from_o the_o true_a as_o of_o logic_n to_o distinguish_v syllogism_n from_o paralogisme_n be_v able_a to_o give_v sentence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o principle_n by_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o inference_n by_o the_o other_o a_o thing_n so_o hard_o as_o even_o learned_a divines_n do_v much_o suspect_v their_o own_o sufficiency_n to_o judge_v of_o deduction_n &_o dare_v not_o absolute_o pronounce_v their_o sentence_n but_o refer_v the_o same_o to_o definition_n of_o authority_n which_o beside_o skill_n of_o scripture_n &_o logic_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n perpetual_a assistance_n in_o teach_v the_o christian_a church_n wherefore_o if_o protestant_n will_v bind_v we_o to_o bring_v express_a scripture_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o imag_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o saintes_n they_o must_v themselves_o likewise_o be_v bind_v to_o bring_v express_a scripture_n against_o anabaptist_n for_o scripture_n for_o d._n field_n l._n 4._o of_o the_o church_n c._n 20._o say_v it_o be_v not_o where_o express_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n christen_v of_o infant_n and_o for_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o sunday_n in_o lieu_n of_o the_o ancient_a sabboath_n day_n for_o their_o dedicate_a of_o practice_n of_o concern_v the_o protestant_n keep_v festival_n day_n of_o saint_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n the_o minister_n say_v not_o a_o word_n which_o be_v tacit_o to_o grant_v that_o this_o duty_n of_o religion_n be_v use_v pious_o by_o the_o english_a church_n although_o the_o same_o want_v the_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n why_o then_o may_v not_o catholic_n pray_v unto_o saintes_n though_o there_o be_v no_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n for_o such_o practice_n day_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n for_o the_o appear_v the_o concern_v the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 302._o that_o it_o be_v
11.1_o ad_fw-la cor._n i_o hear_v say_v he_o what_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n import_n for_o christ_n do_v give_v we_o not_o only_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n but_o also_o the_o very_a body_n wherein_o he_o die_v and_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n yea_o libro_fw-la de_fw-la coena_fw-la inter_fw-la eius_fw-la opuscula_fw-la pag._n 133._o he_o say_v that_o negare_fw-la veram_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la substantiam_fw-la to_o deny_v the_o true_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v give_v in_o the_o supper_n be_v execrabilis_fw-la blasphemia_fw-la auditu_fw-la indigna_fw-es a_o execrable_a blasphemy_n against_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o stop_v our_o ear_n the_o caluinian_a doctrine_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v only_o in_o heaven_n be_v spiritual_o present_a not_o only_o by_o faith_n not_o only_o according_a to_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o grace_n but_o also_o in_o his_o bodily_a substance_n yet_o only_o unto_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n not_o unto_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n be_v both_o against_o god_n word_n and_o implicatory_a in_o reason_n first_o it_o be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o zuinglian_n against_o the_o plain_a &_o express_v word_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o our_o saviour_n by_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n matth._n 26._o do_v aver_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o take_n and_o eat_v unto_o which_o by_o these_o word_n he_o do_v invite_v and_o exhort_v but_o by_o this_o speech_n he_o do_v invite_v and_o exhort_v unto_o sacramental_a and_o corporal_a take_n and_o eat_v this_o appear_v by_o the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n take_v the_o sacrament_n with_o their_o corporal_a mouth_n this_o also_o our_o adversaries_n can_v deny_v see_v they_o urge_v by_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n corporal_a receive_v in_o both_o kind_n therefore_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n aver_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n in_o substance_n in_o respect_n of_o corporal_a take_n and_o eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o flesh_n which_o doctrine_n caluinist_n stiff_o deny_v only_o hold_v the_o substantial_a communication_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o respect_n of_o spiritual_a receive_n by_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n second_o their_o real_a presence_n be_v a_o fiction_n to_o no_o purpose_n for_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o put_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o verify_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n in_o a_o true_a and_o real_a sense_n so_o make_v the_o thing_n christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o which_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o pronowne_a this_o to_o be_v true_o &_o real_o his_o body_n but_o caluinist_n put_v not_o a_o presence_n which_o make_v the_o thing_n christ_n have_v in_o hand_n and_o demonstrate_v by_o the_o pronowne_a this_o to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o his_o body_n but_o only_o by_o figure_n this_o i_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o figure_n and_o show_v and_o not_o in_o substance_n be_v not_o true_o &_o real_o christ_n his_o body_n even_o as_o what_o be_v a_o man_n in_o show_n and_o figure_n not_o in_o essence_n and_o substance_n be_v not_o true_o and_o real_o a_o man_n but_o caluinist_n say_v that_o this_o or_o the_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n be_v christ_n body_n in_o show_n &_o figure_n and_o not_o in_o substance_n ergo_fw-la they_o put_v not_o a_o real_a presence_n which_o make_v that_o which_o christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n &_o do_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o particle_n this_o to_o be_v true_o his_o body_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o fiction_n devise_v to_o satisfy_v the_o caluinian_a fancy_n not_o the_o christian_a faith_n or_o the_o rigurous_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n three_o by_o this_o doctrine_n they_o bound_v themselves_o and_o other_o to_o believe_v a_o high_a and_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n without_o any_o necessity_n or_o compulsion_n from_o god_n word_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o unintelligible_a then_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v true_a and_o real_a union_n according_a to_o substance_n betwixt_o two_o distinct_a individual_a substance_n that_o be_v distant_a the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o as_o far_o as_o heaven_n be_v from_o earth_n hence_o caluin_n say_v libro_fw-la de_fw-la coena_fw-la that_o this_o be_v sublime_a &_o arduum_fw-la quod_fw-la neque_fw-la quidem_fw-la cogitation_n complecti_fw-la possimus_fw-la &_o in_o cap._n 11.1_o ad_fw-la cor._n arcanum_fw-la &_o mirificum_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la opus_fw-la quod_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la modulo_fw-la metiri_fw-la nefas_fw-la sit_fw-la but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o enforce_v this_o caluinian_a mystery_n nor_o be_v there_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o affirm_v it_o this_o be_v prove_v because_o the_o mystery_n of_o their_o real_a presence_n either_o have_v no_o ground_n in_o scripture_n or_o be_v ground_v on_o these_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o caluinist_n on_o these_o word_n can_v ground_v the_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n of_o their_o real_a presence_n for_o they_o understand_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o figurative_a sense_n and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o true_a proper_o and_o literal_o now_o a_o mystery_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v ground_v upon_o the_o figurative_a sense_n of_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n yea_o upon_o mere_a figurative_a construction_n of_o scripture_n to_o obtrude_v unto_o other_o a_o article_n of_o necessary_a belief_n be_v impudence_n as_o say_v s._n augustine_n epist._n 68_o non_fw-la nisi_fw-la impudentiss_fw-la mè_fw-la nititur_fw-la quis_fw-la aliquid_fw-la in_o allegoria_fw-la positum_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la interpretari_fw-la nisi_fw-la habeat_fw-la &_o manifesta_fw-la testimonia_fw-la quorum_fw-la lumine_fw-la illustrentur_fw-la obscura_fw-la therefore_o the_o caluinian_a real_a presence_n be_v a_o mystery_n incomprehensible_a ground_v on_o mere_a figurative_a construction_n of_o god_n word_n not_o back_v by_o any_o literal_a text_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v believe_v without_o necessity_n or_o any_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a warrant_n hence_o i_o infer_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o caluinian_a real_a presence_n be_v unwise_a for_o what_o great_a folly_n then_o for_o man_n to_o deny_v their_o wit_n and_o break_v their_o head_n to_o believe_v a_o hard_a and_o difficile_a matter_n in_o believe_v whereof_o there_o be_v no_o merit_n of_o faith_n in_o believe_v the_o caluinian_a real_a presence_n there_o be_v no_o merit_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o captivate_v our_o understanding_n unto_o mysterye_n clear_o deliver_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o unto_o man_n figurative_a exposition_n thereof_o yea_o no_o figurative_a exposition_n above_o reason_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v except_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o some_o literal_a text_n or_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o full_a tradition_n as_o god_n word_n unwritten_a second_o i_o infer_v that_o caluinist_n bear_v more_o reverence_n unto_o john_n caluin_n then_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n for_o caluins_n mystery_n be_v believe_v by_o caluinist_n be_v confess_o a_o doctrine_n most_o hard_o difficile_a incomprehensible_a and_o yet_o not_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n but_o caluin_n figurative_a comment_n thereupon_a on_o the_o other_o side_n transubstantiation_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o they_o to_o be_v the_o literal_a and_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n jesus_n so_o that_o without_o transubstantiation_n his_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v literal_o true_a as_o our_o minister_n do_v confess_v pag._n 397._o yet_o because_o it_o be_v hard_a difficile_a incomprehensible_a caluinist_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o believe_v it_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o believe_v caluin_n then_o christ_n special_o see_v the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n literal_a sense_n be_v not_o so_o hard_a and_o un-intelligible_a as_o caluins_n figurative_a construction_n for_o one_o may_n more_o easy_o conceive_v a_o body_n to_o be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o which_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n do_v enforce_v than_o a_o body_n to_o be_v true_o and_o substantial_o give_v where_o true_o and_o substantial_o it_o be_v not_o which_o be_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n by_o caluin_n figurative_a construction_n obtrude_v the_o argument_n against_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n vain_a and_o idle_a §._o 3._o the_o minister_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n be_v to_o be_v figurative_o understand_v bring_v seven_o argument_n pag._n 391._o &_o one_o pag._n 401._o and_o three_o other_o pag._n 418._o but_o the_o first_o and_o three_o of_o these_o three_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o second_o
&_o last_o of_o the_o seven_o so_o that_o his_o argument_n be_v nine_o in_o all_o these_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o substance_n of_o all_o his_o disputation_n i_o will_v here_o set_v they_o down_o &_o answer_v they_o one_o by_o one_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v upon_o what_o frivolous_a reason_n these_o man_n be_v move_v to_o reject_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n concern_v the_o high_a mysterye_n of_o faith_n his_o first_o argument_n pag._n 397._o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v remain_v christ_n speech_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n can_v be_v proper_o true_a because_o one_o individual_a substance_n can_v be_v predicate_v of_o another_o proper_o but_o it_o shall_v be_v afterward_o by_o father_n and_o scripture_n prove_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v answer_n you_o will_v prove_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o remain_v in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n ad_fw-la kalendas_fw-la graecas_fw-la the_o mean_a while_n out_o of_o what_o you_o here_o confess_v i_o argue_v against_o you_o you_o grant_v that_o except_o transubstantiation_n be_v maintain_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o literal_a sense_n but_o they_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n for_o on_o these_o word_n the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v ground_n a_o chief_a mystery_n or_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v not_o figurative_a text_n can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n concern_v any_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n of_o faith_n the_o second_o argument_n pag._n 397._o the_o word_n whereby_o the_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v luc._n 22.20_o be_v tropical_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n answer_n first_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a that_o our_o saviour_n deliver_v some_o precept_n article_n or_o sacrament_n shall_v use_v word_n that_o be_v figurative_a and_o exorbitant_a according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n if_o they_o be_v not_o figurative_a nor_o unusual_a but_o ordinary_a plain_a manifest_a perspicuous_a according_a to_o the_o common_a phrase_n and_o vulgar_a manner_n of_o speech_n this_o speech_n this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o if_o it_o be_v figurative_a according_a to_o grammar_n yet_o be_v it_o plain_a easy_a &_o clear_o according_a to_o common_a speech_n for_o no_o man_n hear_v these_o word_n this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n shed_v for_o you_o can_v think_v that_o the_o cup_n and_o not_o the_o blood_n contain_v therein_o be_v shed_v for_o us._n second_o i_o deny_v that_o any_o word_n of_o this_o speech_n this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o be_v figurative_a this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n be_v not_o figurative_a see_v christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o true_a cup_n not_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o cup_n and_o the_o thing_n contain_v therein_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o blood_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v also_o true_o and_o proper_o say_v to_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n for_o it_o be_v the_o thing_n require_v by_o the_o new_a testament_n &_o covenant_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o common_o and_o vulgar_o man_n say_v of_o the_o thing_n require_v by_o covenant_n this_o be_v our_o covenant_n final_o the_o cup_n in_o his_o blood_n be_v proper_o say_v to_o be_v shed_v see_v the_o blood_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o shed_v &_o so_o the_o cup_n proper_o shed_v in_o that_o respect_n as_o to_o say_v of_o a_o cup_n of_o wine_n this_o cup_n be_v spill_v in_o the_o wine_n thereof_o be_v not_o figurative_a but_o rather_o a_o speech_n unnecessary_o plain_a the_o three_o argument_n pag._n 397._o if_o the_o word_n be_v take_v proper_o than_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v deliver_v and_o receive_v without_o the_o soul_n and_o deity_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n the_o body_n be_v a_o distinct_a and_o diverse_a thing_n from_o the_o soul_n and_o likewise_o from_o blood_n answer_n thousand_o instance_n may_v be_v bring_v that_o show_n your_o gross_a ignorance_n in_o theology_n who_o thus_o argue_v for_o example_n the_o gospel_n john_n 1.10_o say_v the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n be_v this_o argument_n good_a flesh_n in_o the_o propriety_n of_o speech_n be_v a_o distinct_a and_o diverse_a thing_n from_o blood_n and_o from_o soul_n ergo_fw-la either_o these_o word_n be_v figurative_a and_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n take_v substantial_o flesh_n or_o else_o we_o must_v say_v that_o he_o take_v dead_a flesh_n without_o blood_n &_o soul_n s._n peter_n say_v that_o christ_n do_v bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o body_n upon_o the_o wood_n be_v he_o not_o simple_a that_o will_v argue_v as_o you_o do_v body_n in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n be_v a_o thing_n distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n and_o from_o the_o godhead_n therefore_o either_o the_o word_n be_v figurative_a and_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o christ_n do_v true_o suffer_v in_o body_n or_o else_o we_o must_v say_v that_o his_o body_n without_o soul_n and_o without_o his_o deity_n suffer_v on_o the_o crosse._n not_o so_o for_o though_o the_o body_n be_v a_o thing_n distinct_a and_o diverse_a from_o the_o soul_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n unite_a and_o join_v with_o the_o soul_n when_o the_o person_n live_v and_o so_o the_o body_n of_o a_o live_a person_n can_v be_v give_v except_o the_o soul_n be_v give_v consequent_o or_o by_o concomitancy_n therewith_o ordinary_a philosophy_n may_v have_v teach_v you_o this_o where_o it_o be_v common_o say_v that_o though_o the_o body_n be_v distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n yet_o can_v the_o body_n be_v move_v or_o remoove_v deliver_v and_o receive_v without_o the_o soul_n the_o same_o go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n per_fw-la accidens_fw-la cum_fw-la corpore_fw-la by_o concomitancy_n together_o with_o the_o body_n the_o four_o argument_n pag._n 397._o see_v christ_n as_o saint_n hierome_n saint_n chrysostome_n and_o euthimius_n affirm_v do_v himself_o sacramental_o eat_v and_o drink_v what_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n if_o the_o word_n be_v literal_o understand_v than_o he_o do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o own_o blood_n answer_n you_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a and_o foolish_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n which_o yet_o you_o dare_v not_o utter_v in_o plain_a word_n for_o if_o christ_n as_o you_o affirm_v do_v eat_v what_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n either_o he_o do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n or_o else_o his_o word_n in_o rigour_n be_v false_a whereby_o he_o say_v of_o what_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n hence_o the_o father_n who_o affirm_v that_o christ_n do_v eat_v what_o he_o give_v affirm_v that_o christ_n do_v eat_v what_o he_o give_v his_o apostle_n consequent_o enforce_v by_o the_o evidence_n of_o god_n word_n express_o aver_v that_o he_o do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n as_o saint_n hierome_n ad_fw-la hedib_n q._n 2._o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n be_v the_o eater_n &_o the_o meat_n that_o be_v eat_v saint_n chrysostome_n homil_n 83._o in_o matth._n that_o the_o apostle_n may_v not_o fear_v to_o do_v the_o same_o christ_n himself_o first_o drink_v his_o own_o blood_n yea_o s._n augustine_n contion_n 1._o in_o psalm_n 33._o say_v that_o christ_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n carry_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n secundum_fw-la literam_fw-la according_a to_o the_o letter_n which_o david_n neither_o do_v nor_o possible_o can_v do_v the_o five_o argument_n pag._n 398._o if_o the_o word_n be_v understand_v literal_o than_o christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n his_o passable_a and_o mortal_a body_n but_o i_o trow_v no_o jesuit_n will_v maintain_v that_o a_o body_n mortal_a and_o passable_a can_v be_v in_o many_o host_n or_o mouth_n at_o once_o nor_o can_v the_o same_o be_v corporal_o eat_v without_o sensible_a touch_v answer_n you_o may_v true_o have_v say_v i_o trow_v no_o caluinist_n will_v believe_v that_o a_o mortal_a and_o passable_a body_n can_v be_v in_o two_o host_n or_o mouth_n at_o once_o let_v the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v it_o never_o so_o express_o and_o even_o as_o express_o as_o these_o word_n import_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o many_o unto_o death_n which_o shall_v be_v break_v for_o you_o on_o the_o crosse._n if_o christ_n give_v his_o body_n that_o be_v to_o suffer_v and_o die_v he_o give_v his_o body_n that_o be_v then_o passable_a &_o mortal_a in_o many_o host_n at_o once_o unto_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o twelve_o now_o this_o be_v the_o plain_n express_v and_o literal_a truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o
jesus_n what_o reason_n can_v you_o have_v to_o trow_v as_o you_o do_v that_o no_o jesuit_n will_v maintain_v it_o what_o jesuit_n can_v you_o name_n of_o so_o many_o that_o have_v write_v of_o this_o matter_n that_o do_v not_o express_o maintain_v that_o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n give_v his_o mortal_a and_o passable_a body_n though_o after_o a_o immortal_a and_o impassable_a manner_n hence_o though_o in_o the_o host_n his_o body_n can_v neither_o be_v sensible_o feel_v nor_o suffer_v yet_o otherwise_o the_o same_o may_v then_o suffer_v in_o the_o place_n where_o it_o do_v exist_v according_a to_o the_o natural_a and_o proper_a manner_n of_o body_n see_v bellarm._n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr euchar._n c._n 12._o suarez_n vasquez_n valentia_n and_o innurable_a other_o the_o sixth_o argument_n pag._n 398._o if_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v literal_o expound_v than_o infidel_n dog_n and_o swine_n may_v eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o all_o that_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v everlasting_a life_n john_n 6.49.50.51_o answer_n i_o wonder_v you_o dare_v with_o such_o toy_n oppose_v the_o literal_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n you_o may_v see_v the_o idleness_n of_o this_o your_o argument_n in_o the_o like_a s._n paul_n say_v 1._o cor._n 12.3_o none_o can_v say_v lord_n jesus_n but_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v one_o argue_v that_o these_o word_n be_v not_o proper_o to_o be_v understand_v because_o parrot_n may_v be_v teach_v to_o say_v lord_n jesus_n &_o so_o if_o these_o word_n none_o can_v say_v lord_n jesus_n but_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v proper_o expound_v than_o parrot_n shall_v be_v inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o this_o disputant_n to_o be_v laugh_v at_o be_v you_o a_o doctor_n and_o do_v not_o understand_v that_o external_a action_n unto_o which_o divine_a promise_n be_v make_v must_v be_v not_o only_o humane_a proceed_n from_o man_n as_o he_o be_v man_n that_o be_v from_o reason_n and_o freewill_n which_o can_v be_v ●n_v dog_n and_o swine_n but_o also_o christian_n that_o be_v procede_v from_o devotion_n &_o ●ayth_n in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o be_v want_v in_o infidel_n the_o seven_o argument_n pag._n 398._o if_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v literal_a plain_a and_o regular_a than_o papist_n can_v not_o be_v di●●racted_v about_o the_o sense_n thereof_o but_o they_o be_v notorious_o divide_v for_o some_o say_v the_o pro●owne_n this_o signifi_v nothing_o other_o say_v it_o signifi_v bread_n some_o say_v it_o signifi_v ●●e_v accident_n of_o bread_n other_o it_o signifi_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n touch_v the_o body_n ●●me_n say_v it_o be_v materia_fw-la prima_fw-la etc._n etc._n answer_n this_o argument_n prove_v nothing_o but_o your_o ignorance_n who_o know_v not_o ●ow_o to_o distinguish_v division_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o speech_n from_o division_n a●out_v the_o logical_a resolution_n of_o the_o single_a word_n of_o a_o speech_n all_o know_v ●hat_n have_v any_o learning_n that_o learned_a man_n be_v divide_v about_o the_o logical_a resolution_n of_o many_o proposition_n vulgar_a and_o plain_a about_o the_o sense_n whereof_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v doubt_n this_o speech_n peter_n be_v a_o man_n a_o man_n run_v the_o wall_n be_v white_a be_v most_o plain_a nor_o be_v man_n divide_v about_o their_o sense_n and_o yet_o he_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o a_o scholar_n that_o do_v not_o ●now_v there_o be_v solemn_a dissension_n in_o logic_n among_o learned_a man_n a●out_v the_o resolution_n of_o these_o speech_n that_o be_v about_o the_o precise_a and_o punctual_a signification_n of_o every_o single_a word_n all_o divine_v agree_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o christ_n speech_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o it_o import_v the_o thing_n he_o hold_v in_o his_o hand_n be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o prolation_n of_o his_o speech_n essential_o &_o substantial_o his_o body_n as_o the_o substantive_a verb_n es●_n do_v import_v but_o they_o dispute_v about_o the_o logical_a and_o precise_a signification_n of_o the_o single_a word_n what_o be_v design_v punctual_o by_o the_o demonstrative_a pronowne_n this_o what_o by_o body_n which_o be_v mere_a logical_a and_o philosophical_a subtlety_n common_a to_o all_o proposition_n where_o the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v so_o that_o to_o mention_v these_o difference_n as_o matter_n of_o moment_n be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o heretical_a ignorance_n be_v out_o of_o love_n with_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n &_o resolve_v not_o to_o believe_v it_o seek_v the_o veil_n of_o every_o idle_a pretence_n to_o hide_v the_o infidelity_n of_o his_o hart_n the_o eight_o argument_n pag._n 413._o if_o the_o say_v word_n be_v understand_v literal_o than_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v proper_o broke●_n and_o his_o blood_n proper_o shed_v in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o saint_n paul_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o 1._o cor._n 11.24_o saint_n luke_n say_v this_o be_v the_o cup_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o proper_o break_v nor_o his_o blood_n proper_o shed_v in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n answer_n the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v break_v &_o his_o blood_n shed_v in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o only_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v his_o body_n which_o be_v break_v &_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n caluin_n c._n 11.1_o ad_fw-la cor._n do_v expound_v break_v and_o shed_v for_o we_o on_o the_o cross_n where_o christ_n precious_a blood_n be_v proper_o shed_v his_o sacred_a body_n break_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o vein_n thereof_o which_o be_v there_o rend_v into_o piece_n beside_o to_o be_v break_v for_o we_o and_o shed_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o place_n signifyes_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v for_o we_o unto_o god_n as_o caluin_n say_v in_o the_o former_a place_n frangi_fw-la interpreter_n immolari_fw-la in_o which_o sense_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v break_v proper_o not_o only_o on_o the_o cross_n but_o also_o in_o the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v a_o true_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n as_o catholic_n teach_v now_o take_v what_o part_n you_o will_v let_v the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n break_v and_o shed_v for_o we_o that_o be_v sacrifyce_v for_o we_o on_o the_o cross_n or_o break_v and_o shed_v that_o be_v sacrifyce_v for_o we_o in_o the_o eucharist_n still_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n &_o not_o bread_n and_o wine_n see_v christ_n neither_o in_o his_o supper_n nor_o on_o his_o cross_n do_v sacrifice_v bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n only_o the_o nine_o argument_n pag._n 401._o many_o father_n treat_v of_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n call_v they_o figure_n representation_n memorial_n antitype_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o that_o which_o be_v a_o figure_n similitude_n representation_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o proper_o the_o same_o answer_n first_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n of_o your_o argument_n be_v false_a for_o not_o one_o father_n of_o the_o many_o you_o cite_v do_v say_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o all_o they_o say_v be_v first_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o figure_n memorial_n and_o antytype_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o death_n so_o s._n aug_n l._n 3._o the_o doctrine_n christ._n c._n 16._o second_o that_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n and_o of_o the_o unity_n thereof_o origen_n in_o c._n 15._o matth._n aug._n in_o psal_n 3_o three_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n before_o consecration_n be_v figure_n of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n as_o s._n ambros._n l_o 4._o do_v sacram._n c._n 5._o druthmarus_n in_o c._n 26._o matth._n four_o that_o christ_n do_v in_o the_o eucharist_n represent_v his_o body_n where_o they_o take_v representation_n for_o the_o real_a exhibition_n of_o the_o thing_n promise_v as_o we_o common_o say_v that_o the_o debtor_n on_o such_o a_o day_n be_v to_o represent_v the_o money_n that_o be_v real●y_v deliver_v as_o tertul._n count_v marci_n l._n 1._o c._n 14._o glossa_fw-la de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi d._n 2._o five_o they_o ●ay_v that_o the_o sacred_a vessel_n in_o the_o old_a law_n contain_v only_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o imperfect_a upon_o s._n mat●hew_n final_o for_o want_v of_o better_a testimony_n you_o bring_v some_o that_o pro●esse_n against_o you_o that_o
of_o bread_n in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n therewith_o this_o manner_n of_o presence_n be_v clear_o consequent_a upon_o the_o precedent_n and_o that_o grant_v this_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o the_o reason_n upon_o which_o christian_n hold_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o and_o true_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v because_o they_o can_v otherwise_o in_o proper_a &_o plain_a sense_n verify_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n who_o say_v of_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n wherefore_o we_o must_v either_o put_v no_o real_a presence_n at_o all_o or_o else_o put_v such_o a_o real_a presence_n as_o be_v able_a to_o verify_v the_o foresay_a speech_n in_o proper_a and_o rigorous_a sense_n but_o if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n contain_v under_o the_o form_n thereof_o it_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v very_o and_o real_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o though_o we_o shall_v suppose_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o leave_v heaven_n &_o to_o be_v substantial_o present_a in_o the_o church_n where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v give_v yet_o this_o suppose_a presence_n will_v not_o way_n further_o the_o verify_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n except_o his_o body_n be_v veil_v &_o cover_v with_o the_o sensible_a accident_n of_o bread_n so_o that_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o they_o &_o point_v unto_o they_o one_o may_v true_o say_v this_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o why_o shall_v consecrate_v bread_n be_v term_v true_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o his_o body_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o 5._o with_o the_o minister_n folly_n who_o do_v in_o this_o place_n affirm_v that_o thing_n distant_a may_v be_v true_o &_o real_o unite_v be_v refute_v in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 3_o §._o 5._o it_o wherefore_o the_o father_n affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o in_o this_o sacrament_n as_o he_o be_v veil_v with_o the_o semblance_n of_o bread_n as_o saint_n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o book_n high_o commend_v by_o d._n whitaker_n 4._o whitaker_n whitakerus_n de_fw-fr sacrae_fw-la scriptura_fw-la q._n 6._o c._n 11._o cyrill_n cathec_fw-la 4._o say_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v give_v thou_o his_o body_n yea_o master_n 32._o master_n caluin_n in_o ep_v ad_fw-la cor._n c._n 11._o instit._fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 17._o §._o 32._o caluin_n say_v in_o the_o supper_n christ_n jesus_n to_o wit_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v true_o give_v under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n whence_o it_o be_v also_o consequent_a that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v under_o a_o consecrate_a host_n be_v the_o same_o never_o so_o little_a for_o in_o this_o mystery_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v demonstrable_a by_o the_o sensible_a accidence_n so_o that_o consecrate_a bread_n may_v be_v term_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o a_o parcel_n or_o part_n thereof_o only_o but_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n whole_o and_o entyre_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n consecrate_a bread_n can_v not_o true_o &_o proper_o be_v term_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o sole_a part_n and_o parcel_n thereof_o again_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o and_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o only_o to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v in_o the_o supper_n be_v true_o and_o real_o mensis_fw-la real_o augustin_n count_v adversus_fw-la legis_fw-la &_o prophet_n c._n 9_o fidele_z cord_n &_o ore_fw-la suscipimus_fw-la cyprian_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la tertullian_n lib._n de_fw-fr resur_fw-fr caro_fw-la corpore_fw-la christi_fw-la vescitur_fw-la iren._n l._n 5._o c._n 2._o nissen_n orat_fw-la cathec_fw-la chrysost_n homil_n 83._o in_o 1._o ad_fw-la cor._n leo_n serm_n 6._o de_fw-la ieiunio_fw-la 7._o mensis_fw-la eat_v to_o nourish_v and_o feed_v man_n soul_n and_o if_o it_o be_v eat_v only_o mental_o by_o faith_n we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v present_v more_o then_o mental_o by_o faith_n this_o presence_n be_v ordain_v unto_o the_o manducation_n thereof_o for_o else_o why_o do_v christ_n institute_v this_o sacrament_n under_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n but_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o present_a whole_o and_o total_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n he_o can_v be_v true_o and_o real_o eat_v why_o then_o be_v his_o body_n bring_v from_o heaven_n to_o be_v there_o real_o present_a or_o how_o can_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v coextend_v in_o place_n according_a to_o the_o natural_a dimension_n thereof_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n yea_o in_o at_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o redemption_n the_o when_o some_o father_n seem_v to_o say_v that_o the_o wicked_a eat_v not_o christ_n body_n they_o mean_v they_o do_v not_o eat_v it_o fruitful_o or_o thrive_v in_o soul_n by_o the_o eat_n thereof_o as_o we_o common_o say_v of_o man_n that_o thrive_v not_o by_o eat_v that_o they_o do_v not_o eat_v their_o meat_n as_o beda_n super_fw-la exod._n infidelis_fw-la carne_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la vescitur_fw-la s._n cyrill_n hilary_n chrysostome_n origen_n and_o other_o quote_v by_o the_o minister_n p._n 407._o speak_v not_o of_o mere_a corporal_n eat_v but_o of_o eat_v by_o faith_n and_o thus_o infidel_n and_o wicked_a person_n do_v not_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n s._n augustin_n in_o joan._n tract_n 27._o saying_n that_o the_o wicked_a receive_v not_o rem_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n mean_v grace_n not_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n and_o tract_n 59_o saying_n that_o judas_n do_v eat_v panem_fw-la domini_fw-la the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n non_fw-la panem_fw-la dominum_fw-la not_o bread_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n he_o mean_v that_o judas_n in_o his_o own_o persuasion_n and_o faith_n do_v not_o eat_v the_o bread_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n yet_o he_o do_v eat_v the_o bread_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n according_a to_o truth_n &_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n judas_n say_v he_o ep._n 162._o take_v that_o which_o the_o faithful_a know_v to_o be_v the_o price_n of_o their_o redemption_n wicked_a and_o unworthy_a receiver_n as_o father_n teach_v wherefore_o see_v we_o must_v of_o necessity_n grant_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o some_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o consecrate_a bread_n penetrate_v the_o same_o &_o occupy_v the_o same_o place_n with_o it_o why_o shall_v we_o doubt_v to_o believe_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v whole_o and_o total_o in_o every_o consecrate_a host_n for_o if_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o two_o body_n be_v in_o the_o same_o place_n at_o once_o we_o may_v as_o easy_o believe_v the_o same_o of_o twenty_o and_o if_o we_o grant_v that_o one_o part_n of_o christ_n body_n do_v penetrate_v that_o be_v do_v occupy_v the_o same_o room_n with_o the_o quantity_n of_o bread_n why_o shall_v we_o not_o think_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o part_n may_v also_o do_v the_o like_a our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 19_o that_o it_o be_v more_o easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n then_o for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n add_v though_o these_o thing_n be_v impossible_a unto_o man_n yet_o all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n if_o then_o god_n can_v put_v a_o whole_a camel_n into_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n be_v not_o he_o able_a to_o put_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n within_o the_o bigness_n of_o a_o consecrate_a host_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v mortal_a &_o passable_a can_v penetrate_v the_o body_n of_o his_o mother_n &_o come_v out_o of_o her_o womb_n through_o the_o same_o still_o remain_v entire_a as_o we_o profess_v in_o the_o creed_n to_o believe_v natum_fw-la de_fw-fr maria_n virgin_n why_o may_v not_o the_o same_o body_n be_v now_o glorious_a immortal_a and_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v spiritual_a penetrate_v the_o quantity_n of_o bread_n and_o enclose_v itself_o whole_o and_o entire_o within_o the_o small_a compass_n thereof_o christ_n that_o make_v heavy_a thing_n not_o to_o weigh_v as_o the_o body_n of_o peter_n walk_v on_o the_o water_n matth._n 14.16_o colour_a thing_n not_o to_o be_v see_v as_o his_o own_o person_n which_o he_o so_o oft_o make_v invisible_a to_o the_o jew_n bright_a thing_n not_o to_o shine_v as_o his_o body_n after_o his_o resurrection_n more_o bright_a than_o the_o sun_n do_v not_o shine_v in_o so_o many_o apparition_n to_o his_o disciple_n final_o a_o flame_a furnace_n not_o to_o burn_v the_o body_n of_o the_o three_o child_n cast_v into_o the_o midst_n thereof_o why_o may_v not_o he_o keep_v
a_o body_n from_o occupy_v a_o place_n or_o from_o extrude_a another_o body_n from_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v birth_n be_v read_v s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr ago_o christiano_n c._n 24._o &_o serm_n 160._o who_o by_o these_o example_n prove_v that_o a_o body_n may_v penetrate_v with_o another_o where_o he_o say_v show_v i_o the_o weightines_n of_o flesh_n in_o the_o body_n that_o walk_v upon_o the_o wave_n and_o i_o will_v show_v the_o true_a massine_n and_o solidity_n of_o flesh_n in_o the_o body_n that_o come_v in_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v and_o be_v bear_v into_o the_o world_n without_o undo_v his_o mother_n integrity_n in_o his_o birth_n for_o to_o occupy_v a_o place_n or_o to_o extrude_v thence_o another_o body_n be_v but_o a_o effect_n consequent_a &_o flow_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o quantitive_a substance_n as_o to_o weigh_v to_o be_v see_v to_o shine_v to_o burn_v be_v the_o natural_a and_o necessary_a effect_n of_o heavy_a colour_a bright_a &_o fiery_a thing_n transubstantiation_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o real_a presence_n §._o 2._o this_o i_o prove_v that_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n which_o be_v deny_v and_o take_v away_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v true_a take_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n in_o which_o sense_n they_o be_v to_o be_v take_v as_o have_v be_v show_v but_o without_o grant_v transubstantiation_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v true_a take_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n ergo_fw-la transubstantiation_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v because_o the_o speech_n this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v signify_v that_o the_o thing_n the_o priest_n hold_v in_o his_o hand_n be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o in_o the_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o verb_n est_fw-fr signifyes_n a_o conjunction_n between_o this_o in_o the_o priest_n hand_n &_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v a_o verb_n substantive_a in_o his_o proper_a signification_n signifyes_n a_o substantial_a identity_n between_o this_o in_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n but_o this_o in_o the_o priest_n hand_n be_v before_o consecration_n bread_n a_o thing_n substantial_o distinct_a from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v by_o consecration_n be_v make_v substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o father_n teach_v it_o be_v without_o some_o substantial_a alteration_n or_o change_v and_o what_o other_o substantial_a change_n can_v make_v bread_n to_o become_v true_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n beside_o substantial_a conversion_n of_o the_o same_o into_o his_o body_n conficiunt_fw-la body_n the_o minister_n fly_v unto_o the_o figurative_a sense_n choose_v rather_o to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n according_a to_o the_o letter_n them_z admit_z transubstantiation_n against_o which_o he_o have_v three_o argument_n scatter_v in_o his_o reply_n which_o i_o will_v here_o join_v together_o and_o answer_v the_o first_o be_v pa._n 434._o the_o consecrate_a bread_n be_v term_v very_o bread_n 1._o cor._n 10.16_o &_o 11.26.28_o answer_n this_o be_v a_o very_a untruth_n for_o it_o be_v still_o in_o those_o place_n term_v bread_n cum_fw-la addito_fw-la with_o such_o a_o addition_n as_o signify_v that_o it_o be_v not_o proper_o bread_n but_o our_o saviour_n body_n 1._o cor._n 10.16_o the_o bread_n we_o break_v that_o be_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n be_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o 1._o cor._n 11.26_o as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n &_o 27._o whosoever_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n unworthy_o &_o 28._o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n to_o wit_n whereof_o he_o have_v say_v before_o that_o christ_n by_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o word_n do_v make_v it_o his_o body_n now_o he_o that_o eat_v bread_n turn_v into_o christ_n body_n or_o make_v his_o body_n do_v not_o true_o eat_v bread_n as_o the_o master_n of_o the_o marriage-feast_n in_o cana_n who_o taste_v water_n make_v wine_n john_n 2.9_o do_v not_o taste_v water_n true_o for_o as_o water_n make_v wine_n be_v not_o water_n even_o so_o bread_n consecrate_v and_o make_v our_o lord_n body_n be_v not_o bread_n the_o second_o be_v pag._n 447._o which_o he_o set_v out_o magnificent_o in_o a_o distinct_a letter_n and_o each_o proposition_n in_o a_o several_a line_n the_o substance_n be_v this_o if_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n change_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n than_o also_o they_o change_v the_o quantity_n &_o accident_n for_o our_o saviour_n take_v the_o whole_a bread_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o well_o upon_o the_o accident_n as_o upon_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n but_o they_o prove_v not_o the_o conversion_n of_o accident_n for_o popish_a transubstantiation_n be_v only_o a_o conversion_n of_o substance_n not_o of_o accident_n therefore_o they_o prove_v not_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n answer_n the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n change_v not_o every_o thing_n into_o his_o body_n over_o which_o they_o be_v speak_v by_o way_n of_o breathe_v for_o then_o they_o shall_v change_v the_o air_n into_o his_o body_n but_o only_o that_o over_o which_o they_o be_v so_o speak_v by_o way_n of_o signification_n that_o their_o signification_n can_v not_o be_v true_a in_o the_o literal_a sense_n except_o that_o be_v hi●_n body_n now_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o literal_a sense_n except_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n as_o the_o minister_n do_v confess_v pag._n 397._o lin_v 17._o but_o they_o may_v be_v true_a according_a to_o the_o letter_n the_o substance_n be_v change_v though_o the_o accident_n remain_v for_o if_o the_o sacrament_n outward_o clothe_v with_o the_o form_n and_o accident_n of_o bread_n be_v inward_o in_o nature_n and_o substance_n christ_n body_n then_o be_v it_o true_o and_o substantial_o his_o body_n and_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v his_o body_n take_v the_o word_n to_o be_v in_o the_o proper_a sense_n for_o substantive_a be_v even_o as_o jacob_n clothe_v with_o the_o garment_n of_o esau_n be_v true_o and_o substantial_o jacob_n and_o not_o esau_n though_o in_o outward_a show_n and_o shape_n he_o seem_v esau._n therefore_o the_o literal_a truth_n of_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n enforce_v we_o to_o say_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n but_o not_o that_o the_o quantity_n of_o bread_n be_v so_o change_v and_o thus_o the_o magnificence_n of_o your_o argument_n be_v mar_v &_o prove_v to_o be_v but_o a_o empty_a show_n the_o three_o argument_n be_v pag._n 422.423_o in_o all_o miraculous_a substantial_a conversion_n a_o new_a substance_n be_v produce_v but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v preexist_v &_o so_o can_v be_v produce_v answer_n the_o mayor_n be_v false_a as_o appeareth_z by_o million_o of_o miraculous_a conversion_n which_o partly_o have_v be_v partly_o shall_v be_v for_o in_o the_o resuscitation_n of_o the_o dead_a when_o carcase_n be_v convert_v into_o man_n no_o new_a thing_n be_v produce_v but_o old_a thing_n and_o substance_n which_o former_o have_v be_v be_v reproduced_a it_o be_v true_a the_o power_n of_o nature_n be_v limit_v according_a to_o time_n &_o place_n can_v reproduce_v but_o only_o produce_v at_o one_o time_n and_o in_o one_o place_n but_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v infinite_a eternal_a immense_a and_o independent_a of_o time_n and_o place_n can_v reproduce_v thing_n that_o preexi_v according_a to_o different_a time_n and_o place_n as_o often_o and_o in_o as_o many_o place_n as_o he_o be_v please_v hence_o he_o can_v and_o do_v reproduce_v upon_o earth_n the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n preexi_v in_o heaven_n as_o the_o father_n aver_v s._n ambros._n l._n 4._o de_fw-la sacra_fw-la c._n 4._o when_o consecration_n be_v do_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v of_o bread_n and_o s._n cyprian_n serm_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la usque_fw-la hodie_fw-la divinissimum_fw-la &_o sanctissimum_fw-la corpus_fw-la create_v s._n gauden_n homil_n tract_n 2._o in_o exod._n quia_fw-la potest_fw-la &_o promisit_fw-la de_fw-la pane_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la efficit_fw-la s._n hierom._n ep_v ad_fw-la heliod_n sacerdotes_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la proprio_fw-la ore_fw-la conficiunt_fw-la but_o some_o may_v object_v that_o as_o a_o man_n show_v a_o leather-purse_n full_a of_o gold_n may_v true_o say_v this_o be_v gold_n or_o a_o paper_n wrap_v up_o full_a of_o silver_n may_v say_v this_o be_v silver_n so_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o consecrate_a bread_n we_o may_v true_o say_v this_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n
a_o thing_n be_v fundamental_o compose_v hence_o fire_n air_n water_n earth_n as_o also_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o alphabet_n be_v term_v element_n because_o both_o be_v primordiall_a simples_n and_o substantial_a part_n the_o one_o of_o mix_a substance_n the_o other_o of_o word_n and_o sentence_n now_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o also_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v corporal_a substance_n the_o primordiall_a simples_n and_o substantial_a principle_n whereof_o their_o nature_n be_v original_o compose_v be_v substantial_a matter_n &_o form_n as_o every_o philosopher_n know_v ergo_fw-la transelementation_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n do_v import_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n according_a to_o their_o element_n that_o be_v matter_n &_o form_n be_v not_o this_o transubstantiation_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v because_o in_o transelementation_n matter_n do_v no_o more_o remain_v then_o in_o transubstantiation_n &_o so_o your_o devise_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o be_v false_a for_o as_o when_o transelementation_n be_v partial_a that_o be_v according_a to_o form_v only_o the_o matter_n remain_v so_o likewise_o in_o transubstantiation_n for_o example_n when_o wood_n be_v turn_v into_o fire_n the_o form_n be_v destroy_v the_o matter_n remain_v as_o wood_n by_o this_o change_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v transelemented_a into_o fire_n because_o it_o be_v change_v into_o fire_n according_a to_o the_o form_n which_o be_v one_o element_n of_o wood_n so_o likewise_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v transubstantiate_v into_o fire_n because_o it_o be_v change_v into_o fire_n according_a to_o the_o form_n which_o be_v one_o part_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o wood_n though_o christian_n do_v not_o use_v so_o to_o speak_v because_o aswell_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o grecian_a church_n as_o the_o word_n transubstantiation_n by_o the_o latin_a be_v consecrate_v to_o signify_v the_o substantial_a change_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v total_a according_a to_o both_o element_n &_o substantial_a part_n three_o i_o thus_o argue_v the_o minister_n grant_v that_o transelementation_n do_v import_v a_o essential_a change_n or_o a_o change_n according_a to_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n but_o this_o can_v be_v according_a to_o the_o essential_a form_n only_o &_o not_o also_o according_a to_o the_o essential_a matter_n of_o bread_n else_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v make_v big_a by_o the_o matter_n of_o bread_n change_v into_o it_o as_o we_o see_v the_o fire_n to_o be_v make_v big_a by_o the_o matter_n of_o wood_n remain_v after_o the_o conversion_n thereof_o into_o fire_n ergo_fw-la see_v the_o minister_n grant_v that_o transelementation_n import_v a_o essential_a change_n he_o must_v if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v ridiculous_o absurd_a consequent_o grant_v that_o this_o change_n be_v to_o tall_a else_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v augment_v by_o the_o material_a addition_n of_o bread_n unto_o it_o four_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o father_n appropriation_n of_o this_o word_n unto_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n for_o do_v not_o transelementation_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n import_v a_o substantial_a change_n but_o only_o a_o accidental_a mystical_a &_o significative_a conversion_n of_o they_o i_o ask_v first_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n be_v transelemented_a into_o christ_n blood_n as_o well_o as_o they_o say_v that_o wine_n be_v transelemented_a into_o his_o blood_n for_o thus_o they_o may_v have_v speak_v of_o baptism_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o eucharist_n have_v they_o be_v of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n which_o be_v that_o water_n be_v mystical_o and_o significative_o make_v christ_n blood_n in_o baptism_n as_o much_o as_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n second_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o our_o body_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v transelemented_a into_o christ_n body_n but_o only_o as_o the_o minister_n cite_v s._n nissen_n orat_fw-la catechist_n c._n 34._o transmutantur_fw-la they_o be_v transmute_v why_o this_o but_o because_o transmutation_n be_v a_o general_n term_n signifyes_n any_o mutation_n whether_o substantial_a or_o accidental_a whereas_o transelementation_n can_v import_v but_o a_o substantial_a change_n final_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o man_n soul_n be_v by_o grace_n &_o charity_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n into_o who_o the_o same_o be_v mystical_o change_v theophilact_n indeed_o cite_v by_o the_o minister_n in_o joan._n c._n 6._o v._n 56._o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o manner_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n as_o he_o may_v no_o less_o true_o have_v say_v in_o a_o manner_n transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n but_o that_o man_n be_v by_o grace_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n they_o never_o say_v which_o be_v manifest_a sign_n that_o the_o father_n understand_v by_o transelementation_n according_a to_o the_o proper_a &_o natural_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n a_o substantial_a conversion_n &_o not_o only_o a_o accidental_a much_o less_o a_o mere_a mystical_a change_n iii_o s._n cyrill_n say_v the_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n convert_v bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o own_o flesh_n understand_v not_o popish_a transubstantiation_n but_o mystical_a &_o sacramental_a conversion_n to_o wit_n conversion_n of_o signification_n use_n &_o operation_n for_o he_o speak_v of_o bread_n &_o wine_n according_a to_o their_o whole_a nature_n contain_v substance_n &_o accident_n but_o the_o accident_n be_v only_o mystical_o convert_v into_o christ_n his_o body_n answer_n this_o mist_n which_o the_o minister_n will_v cast_v upon_o this_o matter_n by_o the_o term_n of_o mystical_a conversion_n serve_v only_o to_o catch_v woodcock_n for_o every_o man_n of_o judgement_n may_v present_o see_v that_o this_o sense_n can_v stand_v with_o the_o word_n of_o s._n cyrill_n for_o s._n cyrill_n say_v that_o do_v man_n see_v and_o feel_v what_o be_v inward_o do_v in_o consecrate_a bread_n &_o wine_n man_n shall_v find_v horror_n to_o feed_v thereon_o because_o they_o shall_v see_v and_o feel_v that_o they_o eat_v and_o drink_v flesh_n &_o blood_n hence_o that_o this_o may_v not_o be_v perceave_v he_o say_v the_o conversion_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v do_v inward_o by_o christ_n penetrative_a power_n convert_n they_o into_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o do_v man_n see_v what_o be_v inward_o do_v in_o bread_n &_o wine_n by_o the_o protestant_n significative_a conversion_n they_o will_v feel_v no_o horror_n for_o in_o their_o tenet_n no_o change_n at_o all_o be_v make_v inward_o in_o bread_n but_o the_o whole_a outward_a substance_n be_v assume_v as_o a_o instrument_n to_o sanctify_v the_o soul_n if_o a_o christian_a shall_v see_v this_o conversion_n of_o use_n &_o operation_n shall_v he_o see_v i_o say_v that_o bread_n be_v elevate_v to_o produce_v sanctify_v grace_n in_o his_o soul_n why_o shall_v he_o feel_v horror_n to_o feed_v thereon_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o only_a wilfulness_n against_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n but_o also_o folly_n to_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o s._n cyrill_n of_o mere_a mystical_a &_o significative_a change_n four_o unto_o this_o testimony_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n the_o minister_n repli_v in_o these_o word_n the_o father_n say_v not_o that_o nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n be_v leave_v but_o the_o clean_a the_o contrary_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n go_v away_o &_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v false_o translate_v for_o they_o be_v not_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o substance_n but_o be_v coabsume_v with_o the_o substance_n also_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o consume_v by_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o many_o schoolman_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o external_a element_n pass_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o receiver_n &_o be_v consume_v or_o unite_v to_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o receiver_n answer_n this_o your_o reply_n touch_v two_o point_n first_o the_o translation_n second_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n i_o will_v discover_v your_o vanity_n about_o both_o as_o concern_v the_o first_o you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o wrangler_n and_o give_v unto_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d condemn_v by_o s._n paul_n labour_v to_o make_v those_o say_n to_o be_v dissonant_n and_o contrary_n betwixt_o which_o there_o be_v not_o any_o difference_n in_o respect_n of_o sense_n what_o disagreement_n in_o respect_n of_o sense_n be_v there_o between_o these_o two_o sentence_n which_o you_o say_v be_v contrary_a when_o wax_n be_v put_v into_o the_o fire_n nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n thereof_o be_v
a_o act_n of_o obedience_n unto_o christ_n precept_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o but_o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n 1._o sam._n 15._o 22._o his_o argument_n suppose_v without_o proof_n what_o the_o jesuit_n have_v show_v to_o be_v most_o false_a and_o so_o may_v be_v with_o more_o truth_n turn_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n unto_o the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n but_o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n therefore_o more_o spiritual_a profit_n and_o merit_n be_v get_v by_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o christ_n his_o precept_n §._o 4._o although_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n pertain_v not_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o if_o christ_n do_v special_o command_v the_o same_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o that_o observance_n and_o shall_v by_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_a sin_n not_o against_o his_o sacrament_n and_o institution_n but_o against_o a_o special_a divine_a precept_n hence_o we_o may_v probable_o infer_v that_o christ_n give_v no_o special_a precept_n thereof_o because_o christ_n have_v command_v no_o more_o concern_v the_o use_n of_o the_o eucharist_n than_o what_o by_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o institution_n &_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v bind_v unto_o leave_v accidental_a circumstance_n belong_v thereunto_o to_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o s._n augustin_n note_v say_v 118._o say_v augustin_n ep_v 118._o our_o lord_n do_v not_o appoint_v in_o what_o order_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v take_v afterward_o but_o leave_v authority_n to_o make_v such_o appointment_n unto_o his_o apostle_n by_o who_o he_o be_v to_o dispose_v and_o order_v his_o church_n so_o clear_o do_v s._n augustine_n speak_v that_o christ_n give_v no_o commandment_n to_o his_o church_n concern_v the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n beside_o such_o as_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o which_o kind_a communion_n under_o both_o kind_n can_v be_v as_o have_v be_v prove_v which_o will_v further_o appear_v by_o ponder_v the_o place_n allege_v to_o prove_v a_o precept_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o do_v no_o way_n infer_v a_o precept_n of_o both_o kind_n first_o because_o he_o say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o absolute_o only_a of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n of_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n not_o absolute_o but_o conditional_o do_v this_o as_o often_o as_o you_o drink_v in_o memory_n of_o i_o that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n may_v not_o have_v any_o the_o least_o plausible_a show_n to_o complain_v of_o she_o neglect_v god_n precept_n 5._o precept_n the_o minister_n in_o this_o place_n be_v very_o bitter_a term_v the_o jesuit_n vermine_n infatuate_v romanist_n and_o the_o like_a but_o in_o lieu_n of_o answer_v his_o argument_n he_o confirm_v the_o same_o as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 4._o §._o 5._o for_o this_o precept_n do_v this_o be_v the_o only_a precept_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n as_o shall_v afterward_o appear_v and_o give_v absolute_o of_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n conditional_o of_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n there_o be_v no_o colour_n to_o accuse_v the_o church_n of_o do_v against_o christ_n precept_n by_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n second_o suppose_v christ_n speak_v these_o imperative_a word_n do_v this_o after_o the_o give_v of_o the_o cup_n yet_o be_v they_o to_o be_v understand_v with_o this_o restriction_n do_v this_o that_o be_v all_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o essence_n and_o substance_n of_o this_o action_n in_o memory_n of_o i_o for_o if_o we_o extend_v the_o precept_n do_v this_o further_o than_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o action_n unto_o the_o accidentary_a circumstance_n thereof_o in_o which_o christ_n do_v then_o institute_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n many_o absurditye_n will_v follow_v for_o by_o this_o rule_n we_o must_v always_o celebrate_v and_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n after_o supper_n as_o christ_n do_v special_o see_v this_o circumstance_n of_o after_o supper_n be_v choose_v of_o christ_n as_o be_v very_o proper_a &_o mysterious_a for_o thereby_o be_v signify_v that_o this_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o succeed_v the_o paschall_n lamb_n that_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o evening_n the_o sacrifice_n whereof_o the_o royal_a prophet_n say_v 2._o say_v psal._n 140._o v._o 2._o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n elevatio_fw-la manuum_fw-la mearum_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la vespertinum_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n which_o institute_v in_o the_o evening_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o continue_v until_o the_o end_n thereof_o we_o shall_v also_o by_o this_o rule_n be_v bind_v still_o to_o celebrate_v in_o azime_n that_o be_v unlevened_a bread_n in_o which_o christ_n do_v celebrate_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n say_v do_v this_o which_o circumstance_n be_v also_o mystical_a and_o signifyes_n the_o purity_n of_o our_o saviour_n virginal_a body_n &_o person_n which_o be_v without_o any_o leaven_n of_o sin_n and_o beside_o the_o priest_n may_v not_o give_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o any_o but_o such_o who_o foot_n he_o have_v wash_v afore_o see_v christ_n give_v the_o eucharist_n with_o this_o preparative_n circumstance_n which_o doubtless_o be_v very_o pertinent_a and_o mysterious_a to_o signify_v with_o what_o purity_n of_o conscience_n man_n ought_v to_o approach_v unto_o the_o sacred_a table_n if_o to_o bind_v man_n to_o observe_v these_o circumstance_n of_o our_o saviour_n action_n though_o mysterious_a and_o sacramental_a be_v absurd_a as_o without_o doubt_v it_o be_v most_o absurd_a than_o we_o must_v not_o extend_v the_o precept_n do_v this_o to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o christ_n action_n but_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o precept_n do_v this_o only_o include_v the_o do_v of_o that_o which_o pertain_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o not_o to_o the_o give_v of_o both_o kind_n the_o substance_n thereof_o be_v entire_o in_o one_o only_a kind_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v 2._o prove_v the_o minister_n ignorance_n and_o simplicity_n in_o answer_v these_o argument_n be_v discover_v in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 1_o §._o 2._o the_o second_o text_n much_o urge_v for_o the_o give_v of_o the_o cup_n unto_o all_o man_n be_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la wherein_o some_o note_n our_o saviour_n providence_n say_v that_o he_o foresee_v that_o some_o will_v take_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o laity_n grant_v they_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n say_v of_o the_o cup_n bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la but_o not_o of_o bread_n manducate_v ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la i_o answer_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v plain_a drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o but_o the_o difficulty_n be_v to_o who_o they_o be_v speak_v &_o who_o be_v those_o all_o luther_n will_v have_v all_o man_n for_o who_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v shed_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v shed_v for_o all_o man_n even_o infidel_n jew_n turk_n infant_n the_o cup_n also_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o all_o these_o which_o to_o say_v be_v very_o absurd_a other_o restrain_v the_o word_n all_o to_o the_o faithful_a come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o discretion_n who_o must_v drink_v of_o the_o cup_n all_o of_o they_o but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o they_o that_o be_v by_o nature_n abstemij_fw-la who_o can_v endure_v the_o taste_n of_o any_o wine_n yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v excuse_v from_o the_o sacrament_n wherefore_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v unto_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o they_o all_o only_a and_o though_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o catholics_n to_o say_v it_o and_o put_v their_o adversaries_n to_z prove_v their_o pretend_a precept_n which_o they_o call_v of_o the_o eternal_a king_n for_o the_o cup_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v clear_o convince_v the_o contrary_a good_a reason_n the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n define_v by_o counsel_n shall_v stand_v yet_o ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la we_o can_v very_o probable_o show_v out_o of_o the_o sacred_a text_n that_o the_o particle_n all_o concern_v all_o the_o apostle_n only_o first_o what_o one_o evangelist_n mat._n 26.27_o say_v be_v command_v unto_o all_o bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o another_o relate_v to_o have_v be_v answerable_o perform_v by_o they_o all_o matth._n 14.23_o biberunt_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la omnes_fw-la all_o drink_v thereof_o but_o the_o second_o all_o be_v restrain_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o
crime_n with_o which_o some_o protestant_n charge_v we_o that_o our_o receive_n under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n be_v to_o jump_v in_o opinion_n with_o the_o manichee_n we_o may_v as_o d._n morton_n confess_v reject_v as_o injurious_a say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o manichee_n abstinence_n from_o wine_n but_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o forbearance_n that_o be_v judge_v heretical_a morton_n protestant_n appeal_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 4._o pag._n 140._o extant_a 140._o against_o this_o explication_n of_o the_o place_n of_o gelasius_n it_o be_v object_v that_o the_o same_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o canon_n for_o gelasius_n say_v man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v permit_v to_o receive_v but_o in_o both_o kind_n because_o the_o division_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sacrament_n can_v be_v do_v without_o sacrilege_n the_o whole_a decree_n be_v this_o we_o find_v that_o some_o man_n have_v take_v the_o portion_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n refrain_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o holy_a blood_n which_o man_n because_o they_o be_v imbue_v with_o i_o know_v not_o what_o superstition_n let_v they_o without_o any_o question_n receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n or_o nothing_o at_o all_o for_o the_o division_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o mystery_n can_v be_v use_v without_o a_o great_a sacrilege_n i_o answer_v first_o gelasius_n do_v not_o say_v no_o man_n be_v to_o be_v permit_v to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n but_o only_o no_o superstitious_a abstinent_a second_o his_o reason_n be_v not_o only_o because_o the_o devide_v of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v sacrilege_n but_o quoniam_fw-la nescio_fw-la qua_fw-la superstitione_n docentur_fw-la astringi_fw-la because_o they_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v imbue_v with_o a_o certain_a superstitious_a opinion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o creature_n of_o wine_n be_v impure_a the_o discourse_n then_o of_o gelasius_n be_v because_o these_o man_n be_v superstitious_o conceited_a that_o the_o creature_n of_o wine_n be_v the_o devil_n gall_n therefore_o by_o they_o the_o devide_v of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n receive_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n without_o the_o cup_n sine_fw-la grandi_fw-la sacrilegio_fw-la fieri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la can_v be_v do_v without_o great_a sacrilege_n whence_o he_o conclude_v proculdubio_fw-la arceantur_fw-la let_v such_o man_n be_v keep_v from_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n without_o any_o question_n mercy_n or_o indulgence_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o man_n orthodoxal_o conceit_v about_o the_o creature_n of_o wine_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n may_v be_v grant_v sometime_o upon_o just_a cause_n as_o if_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n abstemij_fw-la that_o can_v endure_v wine_n but_o man_n that_o be_v superstitious_o persuade_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o wine_n proculdubio_fw-la arceantur_fw-la let_v communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v deny_v unto_o they_o without_o question_n and_o grant_v in_o no_o case_n because_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v ever_o sacrilegious_a the_o minister_n also_o in_o this_o place_n keep_v a_o stir_n and_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o jesuit_n vasquez_n do_v main_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o jesuit_n answerer_n about_o this_o place_n of_o gelasius_n the_o jesuit_n say_v he_o be_v confute_v by_o a_o learned_a and_o intelligent_a man_n of_o his_o own_o society_n to_o wit_n vasquez_n who_o say_v that_o some_o of_o his_o party_n apply_v the_o place_n of_o gelasius_n against_o manichees_n but_o this_o exposition_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o last_o clause_n of_o the_o canon_n answer_n you_o show_v great_a desire_n to_o discredit_v your_o adversary_n yet_o can_v you_o do_v it_o so_o much_o as_o in_o this_o trifle_n with_o truth_n for_o in_o cite_v the_o censure_n of_o vasquez_n you_o leave_v out_o the_o principal_a word_n which_o be_v set_v down_o will_v have_v mar_v your_o market_n vasquez_n not_o only_o say_v that_o some_o of_o his_o side_n explicate_v the_o place_n of_o gelasius_n of_o lay_v manichee_n but_o also_o add_v his_o judgement_n about_o the_o same_o say_n probabiliter_fw-la explicant_fw-la this_o their_o explication_n be_v probable_a do_v not_o you_o see_v your_o falsehood_n in_o cite_v and_o vanity_n in_o urge_v this_o censure_n of_o vasquez_n if_o this_o explication_n be_v probable_a even_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o vasquez_n how_o be_v the_o jesuit_n confute_v by_o vasquez_n of_o his_o own_o society_n as_o not_o answer_v your_o argument_n sufficient_o be_v it_o not_o sufficient_a that_o catholic_n bring_v probable_a solution_n unto_o your_o argument_n against_o christian_a custom_n define_v in_o counsel_n and_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n before_o you_o or_o your_o luther_n be_v bear_v you_o yourself_o say_v pag._n 11._o that_o no_o man_n be_v to_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n common_o and_o ancient_o receive_v upon_o uncertain_a and_o probable_a reason_n if_o the_o jesuit_n have_v answer_v your_o argument_n probable_o as_o even_o by_o this_o censure_n of_o vasquez_n he_o have_v then_o be_v your_o argument_n at_o the_o most_o but_o probable_a and_o consequent_o your_o revolt_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ground_v thereon_o damnable_a who_o now_o be_v condemn_v by_o vasquez_n his_o censure_n but_o vasquez_n say_v that_o the_o jesuit_n explication_n though_o it_o agree_v fit_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o gelasius_n yet_o can_v be_v fit_v to_o the_o last_o branch_n thereof_o where_o gelasius_n say_v that_o the_o division_n of_o the_o one_o and_o same_o mystery_n be_v sacrilegious_a in_o itself_o and_o in_o nature_n quare_fw-la mihi_fw-la magis_fw-la placet_fw-la altera_fw-la explicatio_fw-la wherefore_o say_v vasquez_n unto_o i_o another_o explication_n seem_v more_o probable_a i_o answer_v first_o gelasius_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o division_n of_o the_o mystery_n be_v in_o itself_o &_o in_o nature_n a_o sacrilege_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v very_o probable_o say_v that_o he_o do_v so_o mean_a for_o what_o sense_n be_v there_o in_o this_o discourse_n to_o divide_v the_o sacrament_n by_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n be_v a_o sacrilege_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n and_o absolute_o in_o itself_o therefore_o let_v not_o these_o man_n be_v permit_v in_o any_o case_n to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n quoniam_fw-la nescio_fw-la qua_fw-la superstitione_n docentur_fw-la astringi_fw-la because_o they_o be_v convince_v to_o hold_v superstitious_a doctrine_n about_o the_o impurity_n of_o the_o creature_n of_o wine_n beside_o have_v gelasius_n mean_v that_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v a_o sacrilege_n absolute_o in_o itself_o he_o will_v have_v decree_v that_o not_o only_o superstitious_a man_n but_o absolute_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v keep_v from_o the_o same_o proculdubio_fw-la without_o any_o question_n wherefore_o gelasius_n his_o decree_n can_v be_v better_a sense_v then_o thus_o because_o these_o man_n be_v conceited_a superstitious_o against_o the_o creature_n of_o wine_n their_o receive_n in_o one_o kind_n without_o the_o cup_n can_v not_o but_o be_v impious_a therefore_o proculdubio_fw-la arceantur_fw-la let_v not_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o in_o any_o case_n though_o unto_o orthodox_n people_n upon_o just_a reason_n the_o same_o may_v be_v grant_v second_o suppose_v all_o that_o vasquez_n will_v conclude_v to_o wit_n that_o another_o exposition_n be_v more_o probable_a what_o have_v you_o gain_v surely_n nothing_o for_o this_o other_o exposition_n better_o like_v by_o vasquez_n be_v that_o gelasius_n speak_v not_o of_o layman_n receive_v but_o of_o priest_n that_o celebrate_v and_o consecrate_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v sacrilegious_a in_o itself_o for_o priest_n to_o consecrate_v without_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n if_o the_o jesuit_n vasquez_n in_o this_o exposition_n and_o doctrine_n seem_v to_o you_o learned_a &_o intelligent_a be_v it_o so_o in_o god_n name_n you_o be_v satisfy_v and_o your_o adversary_n content_v for_o he_o do_v never_o mean_a to_o say_v that_o this_o explication_n be_v improbable_a special_o the_o same_o be_v give_v by_o gratian_n who_o read_v that_o epistle_n of_o gelasius_n which_o now_o it_o not_o extant_a this_o custom_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o cyprian_n domini_fw-la cyprian_n cyprian_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la say_v that_o the_o law_n forbid_v the_o eat_n of_o blood_n but_o the_o gospel_n command_v the_o same_o shall_v be_v drink_v not_o only_o because_o some_o christian_n to_o wit_n priest_n be_v bind_v to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o because_o christ_n in_o his_o gospel_n do_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n in_o both_o kind_n whence_o grow_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n &_o by_o custom_n there_o grow_v further_o a_o obligation_n to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n except_o there_o be_v some_o just_a cause_n of_o abstinence_n as_o in_o the_o sick_a
be_v not_o only_o as_o satisfaction_n but_o also_o as_o merit_n superfluous_a in_o respect_n of_o himself_o be_v communicable_a unto_o other_o not_o only_o as_o satisfactory_a for_o their_o sin_n but_o also_o as_o meritorious_a of_o glory_n for_o they_o in_o the_o saint_n live_v upon_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o they_o be_v not_o in_o glory_n nor_o can_v they_o in_o this_o life_n be_v so_o perfect_a but_o they_o may_v merit_v still_o more_o &_o more_o glory_n and_o as_o they_o merit_v more_o and_o more_o so_o their_o reward_n be_v great_a and_o great_a hence_o their_o work_n as_o meritorious_a of_o heaven_n can_v never_o be_v superfluous_a nor_o without_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o full_a and_o condign_a reward_n in_o their_o own_o person_n whereby_o it_o come_v also_o to_o pass_v that_o nothing_o of_o their_o merit_n superabound_v to_o be_v communicate_v unto_o other_o but_o of_o their_o work_n as_o satisfactory_a for_o temporal_a reserve_v pain_n there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o reason_n for_o some_o saint_n may_v be_v preserve_v by_o special_a grace_n from_o all_o actual_a sin_n as_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v or_o from_o any_o grevous_a sin_n as_o be_v s._n john_n baptist_n other_o though_o they_o commit_v some_o mortal_a sin_n when_o they_o repent_v the_o penalty_n reserve_v after_o the_o remission_n thereof_o be_v finit_a &_o temporal_a they_o may_v by_o voluntary_a assumption_n or_o divine_a infliction_n endure_v more_o pain_n than_o be_v the_o reserve_v hence_o saint_n may_v have_v satisfaction_n which_o superabound_v that_o be_v which_o have_v not_o the_o reward_n of_o remission_n of_o temporal_a pain_n in_o their_o own_o person_n and_o consequent_o satisfaction_n that_o be_v communicable_a unto_o other_o though_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o work_n be_v still_o proper_a to_o themselves_o and_o incommunicable_a if_o the_o minister_n will_v continue_v his_o rail_n against_o this_o reason_n he_o may_v but_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v can_v he_o deliver_v reason_n for_o his_o protestant_a doctrine_n so_o draw_v out_o of_o the_o bowel_n and_o principle_n of_o christian_a theology_n as_o this_o be_v he_o will_v not_o rail_v so_o much_o as_o he_o do_v but_o yield_v his_o reader_n some_o learned_a discourse_n in_o lieu_n of_o so_o many_o bitter_a invective_n minister_n pag._n 555._o though_o the_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n want_v the_o proper_a fruit_n and_o reward_n of_o satisfaction_n yet_o this_o be_v recompense_v by_o a_o large_a increase_n and_o surplasage_n in_o a_o other_o kind_n can_v be_v no_o dishonour_n to_o god_n as_o prayer_n though_o sometime_o the_o same_o want_v the_o most_o proper_a fruit_n and_o effect_n thereof_o which_o be_v to_o obtain_v the_o thing_n request_v yet_o be_v the_o same_o otherwise_o sufficient_o reward_v answer_n your_o example_n make_v against_o yourself_o for_o pious_a and_o godly_a prayer_n be_v both_o meritorious_a of_o heaven_n and_o impetratory_n of_o what_o be_v request_v never_o want_v either_o of_o these_o two_o fruit_n for_o as_o it_o do_v still_o merit_v new_a increase_n of_o glory_n so_o do_v it_o still_o obtain_v the_o thing_n request_v so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v request_v for_o the_o thing_n be_v request_v by_o godly_a prayer_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o soul_n according_a to_o god_n holy_a will_n but_o so_o far_o it_o be_v still_o impetrate_v and_o if_o the_o particular_a thing_n request_v be_v not_o for_o the_o soul_n great_a good_n another_o thing_n be_v obtain_v in_o lieu_n thereof_o that_o be_v better_a hence_o i_o thus_o argue_v you_o grant_v if_o there_o be_v superabondant_a satisfaction_n of_o saint_n the_o same_o must_v be_v reward_v by_o the_o proper_a fruit_n of_o satisfaction_n as_o much_o as_o prayer_n have_v still_o the_o reward_n of_o impetration_n but_o prayer_n be_v still_o reward_v with_o the_o fruit_n of_o impetration_n either_o in_o the_o person_n of_o he_o that_o pray_v or_o in_o some_o other_o person_n for_o which_o it_o be_v offer_v ergo_fw-la the_o superaboundant_a satisfaction_n of_o saint_n must_v have_v the_o reward_n of_o satisfaction_n which_o see_v they_o can_v have_v in_o their_o person_n they_o must_v have_v it_o in_o some_o other_o party_n to_o who_o it_o be_v apply_v the_o minister_n pag._n 556._o if_o one_o shall_v affirm_v it_o be_v more_o for_o christ_n glory_n to_o purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o people_n which_o in_o this_o life_n be_v perfect_o innocent_a then_o to_o purchase_v a_o people_n carry_v always_o about_o they_o the_o remaynder_n of_o sin_n he_o shall_v not_o honour_v christ_n but_o prove_v himself_o a_o liar_n 1._o john_n 1.8_o so_o likewise_o to_o affirm_v it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o christ_n merit_n to_o purchase_v saint_n that_o can_v make_v condign_a and_o superabondant_a satisfaction_n for_o their_o sin_n carry_v a_o show_n of_o honour_v christ_n but_o be_v in_o truth_n a_o sacrilegious_a error_n answer_n first_o the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n be_v better_a see_v in_o infirmity_n and_o in_o man_n compass_v about_o with_o the_o remaynder_n and_o encumbrance_n of_o sin_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v 2._o cor._n 12.9_o and_o s._n augustine_n that_o the_o grace_n of_o innocency_n be_v felicior_fw-la but_o the_o grace_n of_o redemption_n be_v fortior_fw-la de_fw-la corr._n &_o great_a c._n 11._o second_o ●f_a christ_n do_v purchase_v to_o himself_o some_o excellent_a saint_n that_o do_v make_v condign_a satisfaction_n this_o be_v a_o honour_n to_o his_o merit_n but_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n affirm_v that_o he_o have_v purchase_v to_o himself_o saint_n that_o can_v and_o do_v offer_v unto_o god_n condign_a fruit_n and_o work_n of_o penance_n satisfaction_n compensation_n sacrifice_n of_o justice_n penance_n equal_a &_o commeasured_a unto_o the_o quantity_n of_o the_o sin_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o reserve_v debt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n as_o have_v be_v show_v yea_o that_o saint_n by_o their_o work_n obtain_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n so_o as_o god_n give_v it_o they_o proceed_v as_o a_o just_a judge_n 2._o tim._n 4.8_o ergo_fw-la this_o be_v a_o honour_n to_o christ_n in_o truth_n and_o to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o sacrilegious_a error_n be_v blasphemy_n the_o minister_n pag._n 357._o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o live_n be_v copartnership_n in_o faith_n etc._n etc._n answer_v the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n communion_n of_o saint_n be_v absolute_a without_o restraynt_n not_o to_o be_v limit_v by_o the_o brain_n &_o fancy_n of_o a_o minister_n hence_o it_o import_v that_o between_o saint_n there_o be_v a_o communion_n of_o all_o grace_n and_o perfection_n which_o superabound_v in_o the_o one_o and_o be_v need_v of_o the_o other_o but_o good_a work_n according_a as_o they_o be_v satisfaction_n superabound_v in_o some_o saint_n &_o be_v need_v of_o some_o other_o as_o have_v be_v show_v therefore_o between_o saint_n there_o be_v communion_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o the_o minister_n pag._n 558._o david_n be_v a_o man_n full_a of_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o hart_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o do_v not_o need_v the_o superabondant_a satisfaction_n of_o other_o wherefore_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o communion_n he_o do_v not_o rejoice_v say_v psal._n 118._o i_o be_o o_o lord_n partaker_n of_o all_o that_o fear_v thou_o answer_n suppose_v david_n do_v not_o need_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o other_o saint_n yet_o he_o may_v rejoice_v in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o saint_n who_o may_v participate_v of_o the_o superaboundant_a satisfaction_n of_o other_o if_o they_o need_v they_o &_o that_o he_o do_v not_o need_v they_o he_o know_v not_o certain_o after_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o two_o enormous_a sin_n to_o the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n 1._o coloss._n 22._o i_o joy_v in_o my_o suffering_n for_o you_o and_o i_o make_v full_a the_o thing_n that_o want_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n the_o minister_n pag._n 559._o christ_n passion_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n some_o personal_a and_o in_o his_o own_o flesh_n some_o by_o sympathy_n and_o compassion_n of_o other_o the_o first_o be_v satisfactory_a and_o s._n paul_n supply_v not_o or_o perfect_v not_o they_o for_o than_o christ_n suffering_n be_v imperfect_a the_o second_o be_v exemplare_fw-la purgative_n probative_a and_o for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n these_o s._n paul_n do_v accomplish_v and_o supply_v answer_n to_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o your_o reply_n i_o ask_v whether_o christ_n suffering_n on_o the_o cross_n as_o example_n be_v imperfect_a or_o not_o if_o you_o say_v they_o be_v imperfect_a &_o perfectible_a by_o creature_n you_o blaspheme_v &_o also_o you_o may_v as_o true_o say_v his_o satisfaction_n be_v imperfect_a and_o suppliable_a by_o the_o addition_n of_o saint_n if_o you_o